Ñïàñèáî, ÷òî ñêà÷àëè êíèãó â áåñïëàòíîé ýëåêòðîííîé áèáëèîòåêå BooksCafe.Net
Âñå êíèãè àâòîðà
Ýòà æå êíèãà â äðóãèõ ôîðìàòàõ
Ïðèÿòíîãî ÷òåíèÿ!
St. Peter's Fair
Ellis Peters
ST. PETER’S FAIR
Ellis Peters
Table of Contents
Teaser
The Eve of the Fair
Chapter One
Chapter Two
Chapter Three
Chapter Four
The First Day of the Fair
Chapter One
Chapter Two
Chapter Three
The Second Day of the Fair
Chapter One
Chapter Two
The Third Day of the Fair
Chapter One
Chapter Two
Chapter Three
Chapter Four
Chapter Five
After the Fair
Chapter One
Chapter Two
Chapter Three
Chapter Four
Chapter Five
Chapter Six
About the Author
The Eve of the Fair
Chapter One
It began at the normal daily chapter in the Benedictine monastery of Saint
Peter and Saint Paul, of Shrewsbury, on the thirtieth day of July, in the year
of Our Lord 1139. That day being the eve of Saint Peter ad Vincula, a festival
of solemn and profitable importance to the house that bore his name, the
routine business of the morning meeting had been devoted wholly to the measures
necessary to its proper celebration, and lesser matters had to wait.
The house, given its full dedication, had two saints, but Saint Paul tended
to be neglected, sometimes even omitted from official documents, or so
abbreviated that he almost vanished. Time is money, and clerks find it tedious
to inscribe the entire title, perhaps as many as twenty times in one charter.
They had had to amend their ways, however, since Abbot Radulfus had taken over
the rudder of this cloistral vessel, for he was a man who brooked no slipshod
dealings, and would have all his crew as meticulous as himself.
Brother Cadfael had been out before Prime in his enclosed herb-garden,
observing with approval the blooming of his oriental poppies, and assessing the
time when the seed would be due for gathering. The summer season was at its
height, and promising rich harvest, for the spring had been mild and moist
after plenteous early snows, and June and July hot and sunny, with a few
compensatory showers to keep the leafage fresh and the buds fruitful. The hay
harvest was in, and lavish, the corn looked ripe for the sickle. As soon as the
annual fair was over, the reaping would begin. Cadfael’s fragrant domain, dewy
from the dawn and already warming into drunken sweetness in the rising sun,
filled his senses with the kind of pleasure on which an ascetic church
sometimes frowns, finding something uneasily sinful in pure delight. There were
times when young Brother Mark, who worked with him this delectable field, felt
that he ought to confess his joy among his sins, and meekly accept some
appropriate penance. He was still very young, there were excuses to be found for
him. Brother Cadfael had more sense, and no such scruples. The manifold gifts
of God are there to be delighted in, to fall short of joy would be ingratitude.
Having put in two hours of work before Prime, and having no office in
connection with the abbey fair, which was engaging all attention, Cadfael was
nodding, as was his habit, behind his protective pillar in the dimmest corner
of the chapter-house, perfectly ready to snap into wakefulness if some
unexpected query should be aimed in his direction, and perfectly capable of
answering coherently what he had only partially heard. He had been sixteen
years a monk, by his own considered choice, which he had never regretted, after
a very adventurous life which he had never regretted, either, and he was virtually
out of reach of surprise. He was fifty-nine years old, with a world of
experience stored away within him, and still as tough as a badger—according to
Brother Mark almost as bandy-legged, into the bargain, but Brother Mark was a
privileged being. Cadfael dozed as silently as a closed flower at night, and
hardly ever snored; within the Benedictine rule, and in genial companionship
with it, he had perfected a daily discipline of his own that suited his needs
admirably.
It is probable that he was fast asleep when the steward of the grange court,
with an appropriate apology, ventured into the chapter-house and stood waiting
the abbot’s permission to speak. He was certainly awake when the steward
reported: “My lord, here in the great court is the provost of the town, with a
delegation from the Guild Merchant, asking leave to speak with you. They say
the matter is important.”
Abbot Radulfus allowed his steely, level brows to rise a little, and
indicated graciously that the fathers of the borough should be admitted at
once. Relations between the town of Shrewsbury on one side of the river and the
abbey on the other, if never exactly cordial—that was too much to expect, where
their interests so often collided—were always correct, and their skirmishes
conducted with wary courtesy. If the abbot scented battle, he gave no sign. But
for all that, thought Cadfael, watching the shrewd, lean hatchet-face, he has a
pretty accurate idea of what they’re here for.
The worthies of the guild entered the chapter-house in a solid phalanx, no
less than ten of them, from half the crafts in the town, and led by the
provost. Master Geoffrey Corviser, named for his trade, was a big, portly,
vigorous man not yet fifty, clean-shaven, brisk and dignified. He made some of
the finest shoes and riding-boots in England, and was well aware of their
excellence and his own worth. For this occasion he had put on his best, and
even without the long gown that would have been purgatory in this summer
weather, he made an impressive figure, as clearly he meant to do. Several of
those grouped at his back were well known to Cadfael: Edric Flesher, chief of
the butchers of Shrewsbury, Martin Bellecote, master-carpenter, Reginald of
Aston, the silversmith—men of substance every one. Abbot Radulfus did not know
them, not yet. He had been only half a year in office, sent from London to trim
an easy-going provincial house into more zealous shape, and he had much to
learn about the men of the borders, as he himself, being no man’s fool, was
well aware.
“You are welcome, gentlemen,” said the abbot mildly. “Speak freely, you
shall have attentive hearing.”
The ten made their reverences gravely, spread sturdy feet, and stood planted
like a battle-square, all eyes alert, all judgments held in reserve. The abbot
was concentrating courteous attention upon them with much the same effect. In
his interludes of duty as shepherd, Cadfael had once watched two rams level
just such looks before they clashed foreheads.
“My lord abbot,” said the provost, “as you know, Saint Peter’s Fair opens on
the day after tomorrow, and lasts for three days. It’s of the fair we come to
speak. You know the conditions. For all that time all shops in the town must be
shut, and nothing sold but ale and wine. And ale and wine are sold freely here
at the fairground and the Foregate, too, so that no man can make his living in
the town from that merchandise. For three days, the three busiest of the year,
when we might do well out of tolls on carts and pack-horses and man-loads
passing through the town to reach the fair, we must levy no charges, neither
murage nor pavage. All tolls belong only to the abbey. Goods coming up the Severn
by boat tie up at your jetty, and pay their dues to you. We get nothing. And
for this privilege you pay no more than thirty-eight shillings, and even that
we must go to the trouble to distrain from the rents of your tenants in the
town.”
“No more than thirty-eight shillings!” repeated Abbot Radulfus, and
elevated the iron-grey brows a shade higher, but still with an urbane countenance
and a gentle voice. “The sum was appointed as fair. And not by us. The terms of
the charter have been known to you many years, I believe.”
“They have, and often before now have been found burdensome enough, but
bargains must be kept, and we have never complained. But bad years or good, the
sum has never been raised. And it falls very hard on a town so pressed as we
are now, to lose three days of trade, and the best tolls of the year. Last
summer, as you must know, though you were not then among us, Shrewsbury was
under siege above a month, and stormed at last with great damage to the town
walls, and great neglect of the streets, and for all our efforts there’s still
great need of work on them, and it’s costly labour, after all last summer’s
losses. Not the half of the dilapidations are yet put right, and in these
troublous times, who knows when we may again be under attack? The very traffic
of your fair will be passing through our streets and adding to the wear, while
we get nothing to help make good the damage.”
“Come to the point, Master Provost,” said the abbot in the same tranquil
tone. “You are come to make some demand of us. Speak it out plainly.”
“Father Abbot, so I will! We think—and I speak for the whole guild merchant
and borough gathering of Shrewsbury—that in such a year we have the best
possible case for asking that the abbey should either pay a higher fee for the
fair, or, better by far, set aside a proportion of the fair tolls on goods,
whether by horse-load or cart or boat, to be handed over to the town, and spent
on restoring the walls. You benefit by the protection the town affords you; you
ought, we think, to bear a part with us in maintaining its defences. A tenth
share of the profits would be welcomed, and we should thank you heartily for
it. It is not a demand, with respect, it is an appeal. But we believe the grant
of a tenth would be nothing more than justice.”
Abbot Radulfus sat, very erect and lean and lofty, gravely considering the
phalanx of stout burgesses before him. “That is the view of you all?”
Edric Flesher spoke up bluntly: “It is. And of all our townsmen, too. There
are many who would voice the matter more forcibly than Master Corviser has
done. But we trust in your fellow-feeling, and wait your answer.”
The faint stir that went round the chapter-house was like a great, cautious
sigh. Most of the brothers looked on wide-eyed and anxious; the younger ones
shifted and whispered, but very warily. Prior Robert Pennant, who had looked to
be abbot by this time, and been sorely disappointed at having a stranger
promoted over his head, maintained a silvery, ascetic calm, appeared to move
his lips in prayer, and shot sidelong looks at his superior between narrowed
ivory lids, wishing him irredeemable error while appearing to compassionate and
bless. Old Brother Heribert, recently abbot of this house and now degraded to
its ranks, dozed in a quiet corner, smiling gently, thankful to be at rest.
“We are considering, are we not,” said Radulfus at length, gently and
without haste, “what you pose as a dispute between the rights of the town and
the rights of this house. In such a balance, should the judgment rest with you,
or with me? Surely not! Some disinterested judge is needed. But, gentlemen, I
would remind you, there has been such a decision, now, within the past
half-year, since the siege of which you complain. At the beginning of this year
his Grace King Stephen confirmed to us our ancient charter, with all its grants
in lands, rights and privileges, just as we held them aforetime. He confirmed
also our right to this three-day fair on the feast of our patron Saint Peter,
at the same fee we have paid before, and on the same conditions. Do you suppose
he would have countenanced such a grant, if he had not held it to be just?”
“To say outright what I suppose,” said the provost warmly, “I never supposed
for a moment that the thought of justice entered into it. I make no murmur
against what his Grace chose to do, but it’s plain he held Shrewsbury to be a
hostile town, and most like still does hold it so, because FitzAlan, who is
fled to France now, garrisoned the castle and kept it over a month against him.
But small say we of the town ever had in the matter, and little we could have
done about it! The castle declared for the Empress Maud, and we must put up
with the consequences, while FitzAlan’s away, safe out of reach. My lord abbot,
is that justice?”
“Are you making the claim that his Grace, by confirming the abbey in its
rights, is taking revenge on the town?” asked the abbot with soft and perilous
gentleness.
“I am saying that he never so much as gave the town a thought, or its
injuries a look, or he might have made some concession.”
“Ah! Then should not this appeal of yours be addressed rather to the Lord
Gilbert Prestcote, who is the king’s sheriff, and no doubt has his ear, rather
than to us?”
“It has been so addressed, though not with regard to the fair. It is not for
the sheriff to give away any part of what has been bestowed on the abbey. Only
you, Father, can do that,” said Geoffrey Corviser briskly. It began to be
apparent that the provost knew his way about among the pitfalls of words every
bit as well as did the abbot.
“And what answer did you get from the sheriff?”
“He will do nothing for us until his own walls at the castle are made good.
He promises us the loan of labour when work there is finished, but labour we
could supply, it’s money and materials we need, and it will be a year or more
before he’s ready to turn over even a handful of his men to our needs. In such
a case, Father, do you wonder that we find the fair a burden?”
“Yet we have our needs, too, as urgent to us as yours to you,” said the
abbot after a thoughtful moment of silence. “And I would remind you, our lands
and possessions here lie outside the town walls, even outside the loop of the
river, two protections you enjoy that we do not share. Should we, men, be asked
to pay tolls for what cannot apply to us?”
“Not all your possessions,” said the provost promptly. “There are within the
town some thirty or more messuages in your hold, and your tenants within them,
and their children have to wade in the kennels of broken streets as ours do,
and their horses break legs where the paving is shattered, as ours do.”
“Our tenants enjoy fair treatment from us, and considerate rents, and for
such matters we are responsible. But we cannot be held responsible for the
town’s dilapidations, as we can for those here on our own lands. No,” said the
abbot, raising his voice peremptorily when the provost would have resumed his
arguments, “say no more! We have heard and understood your case, and we are not
without sympathy. But Saint Peter’s Fair is a sacred right granted to this
house, on terms we did not draw up; it is a right that inheres not to me as a
man, but to this house, and I in my passing tenure have no authority to change
or mitigate those terms in the smallest degree. It would be an offence against
the king’s Grace, who has confirmed the charter, and an offence against those
my successors, for it could be taken and cited as a precedent for future years.
No, I will not set aside any part of the profits of the fair to your use, I
will not increase the fee we pay you for it, I will not share in any proportion
the tolls on goods and stalls. All belong here, and all must be gathered here,
according to the charter.” He saw half a dozen mouths open to protest against
so summary a dismissal, and rose in his place, very tall and straight, and
chill of voice and eye. “This chapter is concluded,” he said.
There were one or two among the delegation who would still have tried to
insist, but Geoffrey Corviser had a better notion of his own and the town’s
dignity, and a shrewder idea of what might or might not impress that
self-assured and austere man. He made the abbot a deep, abrupt reverence,
turned on his heel, and strode out of the chapter-house, and his defeated
company recovered their wits and marched as haughtily after him.
There were booths already going up in the great triangle of the horse-fair,
and all along the Foregate from the bridge to the corner of the enclosure,
where the road veered right towards Saint Giles, and the king’s highway to
London. There was a newly-erected wooden jetty downstream from the bridge,
where the long riverside stretch of the main abbey gardens and orchards began,
the rich lowland known as the Gaye. By river, by road, afoot through the
forests and over the border from Wales, traders of all kinds began to make
their way to Shrewsbury. And into the great court of the abbey flocked all the
gentry of the shire, and of neighbouring shires, too, lordlings, knights,
yeomen, with their wives and daughters, to take up residence in the overflowing
guest-halls for the three days of the annual fair. Subsistence goods they grew,
or bred, or brewed, or wove, or span for themselves, the year round, but once a
year they came to buy the luxury cloths, the fine wines, the rare preserved
fruits, the gold and silver work, all the treasures that appeared on the feast
of Saint Peter ad Vincula, and vanished three days later. To these great fairs
came merchants even from Flanders and Germany, shippers with French wines,
shearers with the wool-clip from Wales, and clothiers with the finished goods,
gowns, jerkins, hose, town fashions come to the country. Not many of the
vendors had yet arrived, most would appear next day, on the eve of the feast,
and set up their booths during the long summer evening, ready to begin selling
early on the morrow. But the buyers were arriving in purposeful numbers
already, bent on securing good beds for their stay.
When Brother Cadfael came up from the Meole brook and his vegetable-fields
for Vespers, after a hard and happy afternoon’s work, the great court was
seething with visitors, servants and grooms, and the traffic in and out of the
stables flowed without cease. He stood for a few minutes to watch the pageant,
and Brother Mark at his elbow glowed as he gazed, dazzled by the play of
colours and shimmer of movement in the sunlight.
“Yes,” said Cadfael, viewing with philosophical detachment what Brother Mark
contemplated with excitement and wonder, “the world and his wife will be here,
either to buy or sell.” And he eyed his young friend attentively, for the boy
had seen little enough of the world before entering the order, being thrust
through the gates willy-nilly at sixteen by a stingy uncle who grudged him his
keep even in exchange for hard work, and he had only recently taken his final
vows. “Do you see anything there to tempt you back into the secular world?”
“No,” said Brother Mark, promptly and serenely. “But I may look and enjoy,
just as I do in the garden when the poppies are in flower. It’s no blame to men
if they try to put into their own artifacts all the colours and shapes God put
into his.”
There were certainly a few of God’s more charming artifacts among the throng
of visitors moving about the great court and the stable-yard, young women as
bright and blooming as the poppies, and all the prettier for being in a high
state of expectation, looking forward eagerly to their one great outing of the
year. Some came riding their own ponies, some pillion behind husbands or
grooms, there was even one horse-litter bringing an important dowager from the
south of the shire.
“I never saw it so lively before,” said Mark, gazing with pleasure.
“You’ve not lived through a fair as yet. Last year the town was under siege
all through July and into August, small hope of getting either buyers or
sellers into Shrewsbury for any such business. I had my doubts even about this
year, but it seems trade’s well on the move again, and our gentlefolk are
hungrier than ever for what they missed a year ago. It will be a profitable
fair, I fancy!”
“Then could we not have spared a tithe to help put the town in order?”
demanded Mark.
“You have a way, child, of asking the most awkward questions. I can read
very well what was in the provost’s mind, since he spoke it out in full. But
I’m by no means so sure I know what was in the abbot’s, nor that he uttered the
half of it. A hard man to read!”
Mark had stopped listening. His eyes were on a rider who had just entered at
the gatehouse, and was walking his horse delicately through the moving throng
towards the stables. Three retainers on rough-coated ponies followed at his
heels, one of them with a cross-bow slung at his saddle. In these perilous
times, even here in regions summarily pacified so short a time ago, no
gentleman would undertake a longer journey without provision for his own
defence, and an arbalest reaches further than a sword. This young man both wore
a sword and looked as if he could use it, but he had also brought an archer
with him for security.
It was the master who held Mark’s eyes. He was perhaps a year or two short
of thirty, past the uncertainties of first youth—if, indeed, he had ever suffered
them—and at his resplendent best. Handsomely appointed, elegantly mounted on a
glistening dark bay, he rode with the negligent ease of one accustomed to
horses almost from birth. In the summer heat he had shed his short
riding-cotte, and had it slung over his lap, and rode with his shirt open over
a spare, muscular chest, hung with a cross on a golden chain. The body thus
displayed to view in simple linen shirt and dark hose was long and lissome and
proud of its comeliness, and the head that crowned it was bared to the light, a
smiling, animated face nicely fashioned about large, commanding dark eyes, and
haloed in a cropped cap of dark gold hair, that would have curled had it been
allowed to grow a little longer. He came and passed, and Mark’s eyes followed
him, at once tranquil and wistful, quite without any shade of envy.
“It must be a pleasant thing,” he said thoughtfully, “to be so made as to
give pleasure to those who behold you. Do you suppose he realises his
blessings?”
Mark was rather small himself, from undernourishment from childhood, and
plain of face, with spiky, straw-coloured hair round his tonsure. Not that he
ever viewed himself much in the glass, or realised that he had a pair of great
grey eyes of such immaculate clarity that common beauty faltered before them.
Nor was Cadfael going to remind him of any such assets.
“As the world usually goes,” he said cheerfully, “he probably has a mind
that looks no further ahead or behind than the length of his own fine
eyelashes. But I grant you he’s a pleasure to look at. Yet the mind lasts
longer. Be glad you have one that will wear well. Come on, now, all this will
keep till after supper.”
The word diverted Brother Mark’s thoughts very agreeably. He had been hungry
all his life until he entered this house, and still he preserved the habit of
hunger, so that food, no less than beauty, was unflawed pleasure. He went
willingly at Cadfael’s side towards Vespers, and the supper that would follow.
It was Cadfael who suddenly halted, hailed by name in a high, delighted voice
that plucked his head about towards the summons gladly.
A lady, a slender, young, graceful lady with a heavy sheaf of gold hair and
a bright oval face, and eyes like irises in twilight, purple and clear. Her
body, as Brother Mark saw in his first startled glance, though scarcely swollen
as yet, and proudly carried, was girdled high, and rounded below the girdle.
There was a life there within. He was not so innocent that he did not know the
signs. He should have lowered his eyes, and willed to do so, and could not; she
shone so that it was like all the pictures of the Visiting Virgin that he had
ever seen. And this vision held out both hands to Brother Cadfael, and called
him by his name. Brother Mark, though unwillingly, bent his head and went on
his way alone.
“Girl,” said Brother Cadfael heartily, clasping the proffered hands with
delight, “you bloom like a rose! And he never told me!”
“He has not seen you since the winter,” she said, dimpling and flushing,
“and we did not know then. It was no more than a dream, then. And I have not
seen you since we were wed.”
“And you are happy? And he?”
“Oh, Cadfael, can you ask it!” There had been no need, the radiance Brother
Mark had recognised was dazzling Cadfael no less. “Hugh is here, but he must go
to the sheriff first. He’ll certainly be asking for you before Compline. I have
come to buy a cradle, a beautiful carved cradle for our son. And a Welsh
coverlet, in beautiful warm wool, or perhaps a sheepskin. And fine spun wools,
to weave his gowns.”
“And you keep well? The child gives you no distress?”
“Distress?” she said, wide-eyed and smiling. “I have not had a moment’s
sickness, only joy. Oh, Brother Cadfael,” she said, breaking into laughter,
“how does it come that a brother of this house can ask such wise questions?
Have you not somewhere a son of your own? I could believe it! You know far too
much about us women!”
“As I suppose,” said Cadfael cautiously, “I was born of one, like the rest
of us. Even abbots and archbishops come into the world the same way.”
“But I’m keeping you,” she said, remorseful. “It’s time for Vespers, and I’m
coming, too. I have so many thanks to pour out, there’s never enough time. Say
a prayer for our child!” She pressed him by both hands, and floated away
through the press towards the guest-hall. Born Aline Siward, now Aline
Beringar, wife to the deputy sheriff of Shropshire, Hugh Beringar of Maesbury,
near Oswestry. A year married, and Cadfael had been close friend to that
marriage, and felt himself enlarged and fulfilled by its happiness. He went on
towards the church in high content with the evening, his own mood, and the
prospects for the coming days.
When he emerged from the refectory after supper, into an evening still all
rose and amber light, the court was as animated as at noon, and new arrivals
still entering at the gatehouse. In the cloister Hugh Beringar sat sprawled at
ease, waiting for him; a lightweight, limber, dark young man, lean of feature
and quizzical of eyebrow. A formidable face, impossible to read unless a man
knew the language. Happily, Cadfael did, and read with confidence.
“If you have not lost your cunning,” said the young man, lazily rising, “or
met your overmatch in this new abbot of yours, you can surely find a sound
excuse for missing Collations—and a drop of good wine to share with a friend.”
“Better than an excuse,” said Cadfael readily, “I have an acknowledged
reason. They’re having trouble in the grange court with scour among the calves,
and want a brewing of my cure in a hurry. And I daresay I can find you a
draught of something better than small ale. We can sit outside the workshop,
such a warm evening. But are you not a neglectful husband,” he reproved, as
they fell companionably into step on their way into the gardens, “to abandon
your lady for an old drinking crony?”
“My lady,” said Hugh ruefully, “has altogether abandoned me! A breeding girl
has only to show her nose in the guest-hall, and she’s instantly swept away by
a swarm of older dames, all cooing like doves, and loading her with advice on
everything from diet to midwives’ magic. Aline is holding conference with all
of them, hearing details of all their confinements, and taking note of all
their recommendations. And since I can neither spin, nor weave, nor sew, I’m
banished.” He sounded remarkably complacent about it, and being well aware of
it himself, laughed aloud. “But she told me she had seen you, and you needed no
telling. How do you think she is looking?”
“Radiant!” said Cadfael. “In full bloom, and prettier than ever.”
In the herb-garden, shaded along one side by its high hedge from the
declining sun, the heavy fragrances of the day hung like a spell. They settled
on a bench under the eaves of Cadfael’s workshop, with a jug of wine between
them.
“But I must start my draught brewing,” said Cadfael. “You may talk to me
while I do it. I shall hear you within, and I’ll be with you as soon as I have
it stirring. What’s the news from the great world? Is King Stephen secure on
his throne now, do you think?”
Beringar considered that in silence for a few moments, listening contentedly
to the soft sounds of Cadfael’s movements within the hut. “With all the west
still holding out for the empress, however warily, I doubt it. Nothing is
moving now, but it’s an ominous stillness. You know that Earl Robert of
Gloucester is in Normandy with the empress?”
“So we’d heard. It’s not to be wondered at, he is her half-brother, and fond
of her, so they say, and not an envious man.”
“A good man,” agreed Hugh, doing an opponent generous justice, “one of the
few on either side not grasping for what he himself can get. The west, however
quiet now, will do what Robert says. I can’t believe he’ll hold off for ever.
And even out of the west, he has kinsmen and influence. The word runs that he
and Maud, from their refuge in France, are working away quietly to enlist
powerful allies, wherever they see a hope. If that’s true, this civil war is by
no means over. Promised enough support, there’ll be a bid for the lady’s cause,
soon or late.”
“Robert has daughters married about the land,” said Cadfael thoughtfully,
“and all of them to men of might. One of them to the earl of Chester, I recall.
If a few of that measure declared for the empress, you might well have a war on
your hands to some purpose.”
Beringar drew a long face, and then shrugged off the thought. Earl Ranulf of
Chester was certainly one of the most powerful men in the kingdom, virtually
king himself of an immense palatine where his writ ran, and no other. But for
that very reason he was less likely to feel the need to declare for either side
in the contention for the throne. Himself supreme, and unlikely ever to be
threatened in his own possessions by either Maud or Stephen, he could afford to
sit back and watch his own borders, not merely with a view to preserving them
intact, rather to extending them. A land at odds with itself offers
opportunities, as well as threats.
“Ranulf will need a lot of persuading, kinsman or no. He’s very well as he
is, and if he does move it will be because he sees profit and power in it for
himself, and the empress will come a poor second. He’s not the man to risk
anything for any cause but his own.”
Cadfael came out from the hut to sit beside him, drawing grateful breath in
the evening coolness, for he had his small brazier burning within, beneath his
simmering brew. “That’s better! Now fill me a cup, Hugh, I’m more than ready
for it.” And after a long and satisfying draught he said thoughtfully: “There were
some fears this disturbed state of things could ruin the fair even this year,
but it seems trade keeps on the move while barons skulk in their castles. The
prospects are excellent, after all.”
“For the abbey, perhaps,” agreed Hugh. “The town is less happy about the
outlook, from all we heard as we passed through. This new abbot of yours has
set the burgesses properly by the ears.”
“Ah, you’ve heard about that?” Cadfael recounted the course of the argument,
in case his friend had caught but one side of it. “They have a case for seeking
relief, no question. But so has he for refusing it, and he’s standing firm on
his rights. No way round it in law, he’s taking no more than is granted to him.
And no less!” he added, and sighed.
“Feelings are running high in the town,” warned Beringar seriously. “I would
not be sure you may not have trouble yet. I doubt if the provost made any too
much of their needs. The word in the town is that this may be law, but it is
not justice. But what’s the word with you? How are you faring in the new
dispensation?”
“You’ll hear murmurs even within our walls,” admitted Cadfael, “if you keep
your ears open. But for my part, I have no complaint. He’s a hard man, but
fair, and at least as hard on himself as on others. We’ve been spoiled and easy
with Heribert, and the new curb pulled us up pretty sharply, but that’s the sum
of it. I have much confidence in the man. He’ll chasten where he sees fault,
but he’ll stand by his own against any power where they are threatened
blameless. He’s a man I’d be glad to have beside me in any battle.”
“But his loyalty’s limited to his own?” said Beringar slyly, and cocked a
slender black brow.
“We live in a contentious world,” said Brother Cadfael, who had lived more
than half his life in the thick of the battles. “Who says peace would be good
for us? I don’t know the man well enough yet to know what’s in his mind. I have
not found him limited, but his vows are to his vocation and this house. Give
him room and time, Hugh, and we shall see what follows. Time was when I was in
two minds, or more, about you!” His voice marvelled and smiled at the thought.
“Not very long, however! I shall soon get the measure of Radulfus, too. Hand me
the jug, lad, and then I must go and stir this brew for the calves. How long
have we yet to Compline?”
Chapter Two
On the thirty-first of July the vendors came flooding in, by road and by
river. From noon onward the horse-fair was marked out in lots for stalls and
booths, and the abbey stewards were standing by to guide pedlars and merchants
to their places, and levy the tolls due on the amount of merchandise they
brought. A halfpenny for a modest man-load, a penny for a horse-load, from
twopence to fourpence for a cart-load, depending on the size and capacity, and
higher fees in proportion for the goods unloaded from the river barges that
tied up at the temporary landing-stage along the Gaye. The entire length of the
Foregate hummed and sparkled with movement and colour and chatter, the abbey
barn and stable outside the wall was full, children and dogs ran among the
booths and between the wheels of the carts, excited and shrill.
The discipline of the day’s devotions within the walls was not relaxed, but
between offices a certain air of holiday gaiety had entered with the guests,
and novices and pupils were allowed to wander and gaze without penalty. Abbot
Radulfus held himself aloof, as was due to his dignity, and left the
superintendence of the occasion and the collection of tolls to his lay
stewards, but for all that he knew everything that was going on, and had
measures in mind to deal with any emergency. As soon as the arrival of the
first Flemish merchant was reported to him, together with the news that the man
had little French, he dispatched Brother Matthew, who had lived for some years
in Flanders in his earlier days, and could speak fluent Flemish, to deal with
any problems that might arise. If the fine-cloth merchants were coming, there
was good reason to afford them every facility, for they were profitable
visitors. It was a mark of the significance of the Shrewsbury fair that they
should undertake so long a journey from the East Anglian ports where they put
in, and find it worth their while to hire carts or horses for the overland
pilgrimage.
The Welsh, of course, would certainly be present in some numbers, but for
the most part they would be the local people who had a foot on either side the
border, and knew enough English to need no interpreters. It came as a surprise
to Brother Cadfael to be intercepted once again as he left the refectory after
supper, this time by the steward of the grange court, preoccupied and
breathless with business, and told that he was needed at the jetty, to take
care of one who spoke nothing but Welsh, and a man of consequence, indeed of
self-importance, who would not be fobbed off with the suspect aid of a local
Welshman who might well be in competition with him on the morrow.
“Prior Robert gives you leave, for as long as you’re needed. It’s a fellow
by the name of Rhodri ap Huw, from Mold. He’s brought a great load up the Dee,
and ported it over to Vrnwy and Severn, which must have cost him plenty.”
“What manner of goods?” asked Cadfael, as they made for the gatehouse
together. His interest was immediate and hearty. Nothing could have suited him
better than a sound excuse to be out among the noise and bustle along the
Foregate.
“What looks like a very fine wool-clip, mainly. And also honey and mead. And
I thought I saw some bundles of hides—maybe from Ireland, if he trades out of
the Dee. And there’s the man himself.”
Rhodri ap Huw stood solid as a rock on the wooden planking of the jetty
beside his moored barge, and let the tides of human activity flow round him.
The river ran green and still, at a good level for high summer; even boats of
deeper draught than usual had made the passage without mishap, and were
unloading and unbaling on all sides. The Welshman watched, measuring other
men’s bales with shrewd, narrowed dark eyes, and pricing what he saw. He looked
about fifty years old, and so assured and experienced that it seemed strange he
had never picked up English. Not a tall man, but square-built and powerful,
fierce Welsh bones islanded in a thick growth of thorny black hair and beard.
His dress, though plain and workmanlike, was of excellent material and
well-fitted. He saw the steward hurrying towards him, evidently having carried
out his wishes to the letter, and large, white teeth gleamed contentedly from
the thicket of the black beard.
“Here am I, Master Rhodri,” said Cadfael cheerfully, “to keep you company in
your own tongue. And my name is Cadfael, at your service for all your present
needs.”
“And very welcome, Brother Cadfael,” said Rhodri ap Huw heartily. “I hope
you’ll pardon my fetching you away from your devotions… ”
“I’ll do better. I’ll thank you! A pity to have to miss all this bustle, I
can do with a glimpse of the world now and again.”
Sharp, twinkling eyes surveyed him from head to toe in one swift glance.
“You’ll be from the north yourself, I fancy. Mold is where I come from.”
“Close by Trefriw I was born.”
“A Gwynedd man. But one who’s been a sight further through the world than
Trefriw, by the look of you, brother. As I have. Well, here are my two fellows,
ready to unload and porter for me before I send on part of my cargo downriver
to Bridgnorth, where I have a sale for mead. Shall we have the goods ashore
first?”
The steward bade them choose a stand at whatever point Master Rhodri thought
fit when he had viewed the ground, and left them to supervise the unloading.
Rhodri’s two nimble little Welsh boatmen went to work briskly, hefting the
heavy bales of hides and the wool-sacks with expert ease, and piling them on
the jetty, and Rhodri and Cadfael addressed themselves pleasurably to watching
the lively scene around them; as many of the townsfolk and the abbey guests
were also doing. On a fine summer evening it was the best of entertainments to
lean over the parapet of the bridge, or stroll along the green path to the
Gaye, and stare at an annual commotion which was one of the year’s highlights.
If some of the townspeople looked on with dour faces, and muttered to one
another in sullen undertones, that was no great wonder, either. Yesterday’s
confrontation had been reported throughout the town, they knew they had been
turned away empty-handed.
“A thing worth noting,” said Rhodri, spreading his thick legs on the springy
boards, “how both halves of England can meet in commerce, while they fall out
in every other field. Show a man where there’s money to be made, and he’ll be
there. If barons and kings had the same good sense, a country could be at
peace, and handsomely the gainer by it.”
“Yet I fancy,” said Cadfael dryly, “that there’ll be some hot contention
here even between traders, before the three days are up. More ways than one of
cutting throats.”
“Well, every wise man keeps a weapon about him, whatever suits his skill,
that’s only good sense, too. But we live together, we live together, better
than princes manage it. Though I grant you,” he said weightily, “princes make
good use of these occasions, for that matter. No place like one of your greater
fairs for exchanging news and views without being noticed, or laying plots and
stratagems, or meeting someone you’d liefer not be seen meeting. Nowhere so
solitary as in the middle of a marketplace!”
“In a divided land,” said Cadfael thoughtfully, “you may very well be
right.”
“For instance—look to your left a ways, but don’t turn. You see the meagre
fellow in the fine clothes, the smooth-shaven one with the mincing walk? Come
to watch who’s arriving by water! You may be sure if he’s here at all,
he’s come early, and has his stall already up and stocked, to be free to view
the rest of us. That’s Euan of Shotwick, the glover, and an important man about
Earl Ranulf’s court at Chester, I can tell you.”
“For his skill at his trade?” asked Cadfael dryly, observing the lean,
fastidious, high-nosed figure with interest.
“That and other fields, brother. Euan of Shotwick is one of the sharpest of
all of Earl Ranulf’s intelligencers, and much relied on, and if he’s setting up
a booth here as far as Shrewsbury, it may well be for more purposes than trade.
And then on the other side, look, that great barge standing off ready to come
alongside—downstream of us. See the cut of her? Bristol-built, for a thousand
marks! Straight out of the west country, and the city the king failed to take
last year, and has let well alone ever since.”
Above the softly-flowing surface of Severn, its green silvered now with
slanting evening sunlight, the barge sidled along the grassy shore towards the
end of the jetty. She loomed impressively opulent and graceful, cunningly built
to draw hardly more water than boats half her capacity, and yet steer well and
ride steadily. She had a single mast, and what seemed to be a neat, closed
cabin aft, and three crewmen were poling her inshore with easy, light touches,
and waiting to moor her alongside as soon as there was room. Twenty pence, as
like as not, thought Cadfael, before she gets her load ashore and cleared!
“Made to carry wine, and carry it steady,” said Rhodri ap Huw, narrowing his
sharply-calculating eyes on the boat. “Some of the best wines of France come
into Bristol, they should have a ready sale as far north as this. I should know
that rig!”
A considerable number of onlookers, whether they recognised her port and rig
or not, were curious enough to come down from the bridge and the highroad to
see the Bristol boat come in. She was remarkable enough among her fellow craft
to draw all eyes. Cadfael caught sight of a number of known faces craning among
the crowd: Edric Flesher’s wife Petronilla, Aline Beringar’s maid Constance
leaning over the bridge, one of the abbey stewards forgetting his duties to
stare; and suddenly sunlight on a head of dark gold hair, cropped short, and a
young man came running lightly down from the highway, to halt on the grass
slope above the jetty, and watched admiringly as the Bristol boat slid
alongside, ready to be made fast. The lordling whose assured beauty had aroused
Mark’s wistful admiration was evidently just as inquisitive as the raggedest
barefoot urchin from the Foregate.
The two Welshmen had completed their unloading by this time, and were
waiting for orders, and Rhodri ap Huw was not the man to let his interest in
other men’s business interfere with his own.
“They’ll be a fair while unloading,” he said briskly. “Shall we go and
choose a good place for my stall, while the field’s open?”
Cadfael led the way along the Foregate, where several booths had already
been set up. “You’ll prefer a site on the horse-fair itself, I fancy, where all
the roads meet.”
“Ah, my customers will find me, wherever I am,” said Rhodri smugly; but for
all that, he kept a shrewd eye on all the possibilities, and took his time
about selecting his place, even when they had walked the length of the Foregate
and come to the great open triangle of the horse-fair. The abbey servants had
set up a number of more elaborate booths, that could be closed and locked, and
supply living shelter for their holders, and these were let out for rents.
Other traders brought their own serviceable trestles and light roofs, while the
small country vendors would come in early each morning and display their wares
on the dry ground, or on a woven brychan, filling all the spaces between. For
Rhodri nothing was good enough but the best. He fixed upon a stout booth near
the abbey bam and stable, where all customers coming in for the day could
stable their beasts, and in the act could not fail to notice the goods on the
neighbouring stalls.
“This will serve very well. One of my lads will sleep the nights here.” The
elder of the two had followed them, balancing the first load easily in a sling
over his shoulders, while the other remained to guard the merchandise stacked
on the jetty. Now he began to stow what he had brought, while Rhodri and
Cadfael set off back to the river to dispatch his fellow after him. On the way
they intercepted one of the stewards, notified him of the site chosen, and came
to terms for the rental. Brother Cadfael’s immediate duty was done, but he was
as interested in the growing bustle along the road and by the Severn as any
other man who saw the like but once a year, and there was time to spare yet
before Compline. It was good, too, to be speaking Welsh, there was seldom need
within the walls.
They reached the point where the track turned aside from the highway to go
down to the waterside, and looked down upon a lively scene. The Bristol boat
was moored, and her three crewmen beginning to hoist casks of wine on to the
jetty, while a big, portly, red-faced elderly gentleman in a long gown of
fashionable cut, his capuchon twisted up into an elaborate hat, swung wide
sleeves as he pointed and beckoned, giving orders at large. A fleshy but
powerful face,round and choleric, with bristly brows like furze, and bluish
jowls. He moved with surprising agility and speed, and plainly he considered
himself a man of importance, and expected others to recognise him as such on
sight.
“I thought it might well be!” said Rhodri ap Huw, pleased with his own
acuteness and knowledge of widespread affairs. “Thomas of Bristol, they call
him, one of the biggest importers of wine into the port there, and deals in a
small way in fancy wares from the east, sweetmeats and spices and candies. The
Venetians bring them in from Cyprus and Syria. Costly and profitable! The
ladies will pay high for something their neighbours have not! What did I say?
Money will bring men together. Whether they hold for Stephen or the empress,
they’ll come and rub shoulders at your fair, brother.”
“By the look of him,” said Cadfael, “a man of consequence in the city of
Bristol.”
“So he is, and I’d have said in very good odour with Robert of Gloucester,
but business is business, and it would take more than the simple fear of
venturing into enemy territory to keep him at home, when there’s good money to
be made.”
They had turned to begin the descent to the riverside when they were aware
of a growing murmur of excitement among the people watching from the bridge,
and of heads turning to look towards the town gates on the other side of the
river. The evening light, slanting from the west, cast deep shadows under one
parapet and half across the bridge, but above floated a faint, moving cloud of
fine dust, glittering in the sunset rays, and advancing towards the abbey
shore. A tight knot of young men came into sight, shearing through the
strolling onlookers at a smart pace, like a determined little army on the march.
All the rest were idling the tune pleasurably away on a fine evening, these
were bound somewhere, in resolution and haste, the haste, perhaps, all the more
aggressive lest the resolution be lost. There might have been as many as five
and twenty of them, all male and all young. Some of them Cadfael knew. Martin
Bellecote’s boy Edwy was there, and Edric Flesher’s journeyman, and scions of
half a dozen respected trades within the town; and at their head strode the
provost’s own son, young Philip Corviser, jutting a belligerent chin and
swinging clenched hands to the rhythm of his long-striding walk. They looked
very grave and very dour, and people gazed at them in wonder and speculation,
and drew in at a more cautious pace after their passing, to watch what would
happen.
“If this is not the face of battle,” said Rhodri ap Huw alertly, viewing the
grim young faces while they were still safely distant, “I have never seen it. I
did hear that your house has a difference of opinion with the town. I’ll away
and see all those goods of mine safely stacked away under lock and key, before
the trumpets blow.” And he tucked up his sleeves and was off down the path to
the jetty as nimbly as a squirrel, and hoisting his precious jars of honey out
of harm’s way, leaving Cadfael still thoughtfully gazing by the roadside. The
merchant’s instincts, he thought, were sound enough. The elders of the town had
made their plea and been sent away empty-handed. To judge by their faces, the
younger and hotter-headed worthies of the town of Shrewsbury had resolved upon
stronger measures. A rapid survey reassured him that they were unarmed, as far
as he could see not even a staff among them. But the face, no question, was the
face of battle, and the trumpets were about to blow.
Chapter Three
The advancing phalanx reached the end of the bridge, and checked for no more
than a moment, while their leader cast calculating glances forward along the
Foregate, now populous with smaller stalls, and down at the jetty, and gave
some brisk order. Then he, with perhaps ten of his stalwarts on his heels,
turned and plunged down the path to the river, while the rest marched
vehemently ahead. The interested townspeople, equally mutely and promptly,
split into partisan groups, and pursued both contingents. Not one of them would
willingly miss what was to come. Cadfael, more soberly, eyed the passing ranks,
and was confirmed in believing that they came with the most austere intentions;
there was not a bludgeon among them, and he doubted if any of them ever carried
knives. Nothing about them was warlike, except their faces. Besides, he knew
most of them, there was no wilful harm in any. All the same, he turned down the
path after them, not quite easy in his mind. The Corviser sprig was known for a
wild one, clever, bursting with hot and suspect ideas, locked in combat with
his elders half his time, and occasionally liable to drink rather more than at
this stage he could carry. Though this evening he had certainly not been
drinking; he had far more urgent matters on his mind.
Brother Cadfael sighed, descending the path to the waterside
half-reluctantly. The earnest young are so dangerously given to venturing
beyond the point where experience turns back. And the sharper they are, the
more likely to come by wounds.
He was not at all surprised to find that Rhodri ap Huw, that most
experienced of travellers, had vanished from the jetty, together with his
second porter and all his goods. Rhodri himself would not be far, once he had
seen all his merchandise well on its way to being locked in the booth on the
horse-fair. He would want to watch all that passed, and make his own
dispositions accordingly, but he would be out of sight, and somewhere where he
could make his departure freely whenever he deemed it wise. But there were half
a dozen boats of various sizes busy unloading, dominated by Thomas of Bristol’s
noble barge. Its owner heard the sudden surge of urgent feet on the downhill
track, and turned to level an imperious glance that way, before returning to
his business of supervising the landing of his goods. The array of casks and
bales on the boards was impressive. The young men surging down to the river
could not fail to make an accurate estimate of the powers they faced.
“Gentlemen…!” Philip Corviser hailed them all loudly, coming to a halt with
feet spread, confronting Thomas of Bristol. He had a good, ringing voice; it
carried, and lesser dealers dropped what they were doing to listen. “Gentlemen,
I beg a hearing, as you are citizens all, of whatever town, as I am of
Shrewsbury, and as you care for your own town as I do for mine! You are here
paying rents and tolls to the abbey, while the abbey denies any aid to the
town. And we have greater need than ever the abbey has, of some part of what
you bring.”
He drew breath hard, having spent his first wind. He was a gangling lad, not
yet quite in command of his long limbs, being barely twenty and only just at
the end of his growing. Spruce in his dress, but down at the heel, Cadfael
noticed— proof of the old saying that the shoemaker’s son is always the one who
goes barefoot! He had a thick thatch of reddish dark hair, and a decent, homely
face now pale with passion under his summer tan. A good, deft workman, they
said, when he could be stopped from flying off after some angry cause or other.
Certainly he had a cause now, bless the lad, he was pouring out to these
hard-headed business men all the arguments his father had used to the abbot at
chapter, in dead earnest, and—heaven teach him better sense!—even with hopes of
convincing them!
“If the abbey turns a cold eye on the town’s troubles, should you side with
them? We are here to tell you our side of the story, and appeal to you as men
who also have to bear the burdens of your own boroughs, and may well have seen
at home what war and siege can do to your own walls and pavings. Is it
unreasonable that we should ask for a share in the profits of the fair? The
abbey came by no damage last year, as the town did. If they will not bear their
part for the common good, we address ourselves to you, who have no such
protection from the hardships of the world, and will have fellow-feeling with
those who share the like burdens.”
They were beginning to lose interest in him, to shrug, and turn back to
their unloading. He raised his voice sharply in appeal.
“All we ask is that you will hold back a tithe of the dues you pay to the
abbey, and pay them instead to the town for murage and pavage. If all hold
together, what can the abbey stewards do against you? There need be no cost to
you above what you would be paying in any event, and we should have something
nearer to justice. What do you say? Will you help us?”
They would not! The growl of indifference and derision hardly needed words.
What, set up a challenge to what was laid down by charter, when they had
nothing to gain by it? Why should they take the risk? They turned to their
work, shrugging him off. The young men grouped at his back set up among
themselves a counter murmur, still controlled but growing angry. And Thomas of
Bristol, massive and contemptuous, waved a fist in their spokesman’s face, and
said impatiently: “Stand out of the way, boy, you are hindering your betters!
Pay a tithe to the town indeed! Are not the abbey rights set down according to
law? And can you, dare you tell me they do not pay the fee demanded of them by
charter? If you have a complaint that they are failing to keep the law, take it
to the sheriff, where it belongs, but don’t come here with your nonsense. Now
be off, and let honest men get on with their work.”
The young man took fire. “The men of Shrewsbury are as honest as you, sir,
though something less boastful about it. We take honesty for granted here! And
it is not nonsense that our town goes with broken walls and broken streets,
while abbey and Foregate have escaped all such damage. No, but listen… ”
The merchant turned a broad, hunched back, with disdainful effect, and
stalked away to pick up the staff he had laid against his piled barrels, and
motion his men to continue their labours. Philip started indignantly after him,
for the act was stingingly deliberate, as though a gnat, a mere persistent
nuisance, had been brushed aside.
“Master merchant,” he called hotly, “one word more!” And he laid an
arresting hand to Thomas’s fine, draped sleeve.
They were two choleric people, and it might have come to it even at the
best, sooner or later, but Cadfael’s impression was that Thomas had been
genuinely startled by the grasp at his arm, and believed he was about to be
attacked. Whatever the cause, he swung round and struck out blindly with the
staff he held. The boy flung up his arm, but too late thoroughly to protect his
head. The blow fell heavily on his forearms and temple, and laid him flat on
the planking of the jetty, with blood oozing from a cut above his ear.
That was the end of all peaceful and dignified protest, and the declaration
of war. Many things happened on the instant. Philip had fallen without a cry,
and lay half-stunned; but someone had certainly cried out, a small, protesting
shriek, instantly swallowed up in the roar of anger from the young men of the
town. Two of them rushed to their fallen leader, but the rest, bellowing for
vengeance, lunged to confront the equally roused traders, and closed with them
merrily. In a moment the goods newly disembarked were being hoisted and flung
into the river, and one of the raiders soon followed them, with a bigger
splash. Fortunately those who lived all their lives by Severn usually learned
to swim even before they learned to walk, and the youngster was in no danger of
drowning. By the time he had hauled himself out and returned to the fray, there
was a fully-fledged riot in progress all along the riverside.
Several of the cooler-headed citizens had moved in, though cautiously, to
try to separate the combatants, and talk a little sense into the furious young;
and one or two, not cautious enough, had come in for blows meant for the foe,
the common fate of those who try to make peace where no one is inclined for it.
Cadfael among the rest had rushed down to the jetty, intent
on preventing what might well be a second and fatal blow, to judge by the
merchant’s congested countenance and brandished staff. But someone else was
before him. A girl had clambered frantically up out of the tiny cabin of the
barge, kilted her skirts and leaped ashore, in time to cling with all her
weight to the quivering arm, and plead in agitated tones:
“Uncle, don’t please don’t! He did no violence! You’ve hurt him badly!”
Philip Corviser’s brown eyes, all this time open but unseeing, blinked furiously
at the sound of so unexpected a voice. He heaved himself shakily to his knees,
remembered his injury and his grievance, and gathered sprawled limbs and
faculties to surge to his feet and do battle. Not that his efforts would have
been very effective; his legs gave under him as he tried to rise, and he
gripped his head between steadying hands as though it might fall off if he
shook it. But it was the sight of the girl that stopped him short. There she
stood, clinging, to the merchant’s arm and pleading angelically into his ear,
in tones that could have cooled a dragon, her eyes all the time dilated and
anxious and pitying on Philip. And calling the old demon “uncle”! Philip’s
revenge was put clean out of his reach in an instant, but he scarcely felt a
pang at the deprivation, to judge by the transformation that came over his
bruised and furious face. Swaying on one knee, still dazed, he stared at the
girl as pilgrims might stare at miraculous visions, or lost wanderers at the
Pole star.
She was well worth looking at, a young thing of about eighteen or nineteen
years, bare-armed and bare-headed, with two great braids of blue-black hair
swinging to her waist, and framed between them a round, childish face all roses
and snow, lit by two long-lashed dark blue eyes, at this moment huge with alarm
and concern. No wonder the mere sound of her voice could tame her formidable
uncle, as surely as the sight of her had checked and held at gaze the two young
men who had rushed to salvage and avenge their leader, and who now stood
abashed, gaping and harmless.
It was at that moment that the fight on the jetty, which had become a mêlée
hopelessly tangled, reeled their way, thudding along the planks, knocked over
the stack of small barrels, and sent them rolling thunderously in all
directions. Cadfael grasped young Corviser under the arms,
hoisted him to his feet and hauled him out of harm’s way, thrusting him bodily
into the arms of his friends for safe-keeping, since he was still in a daze. A
rolling cask swept Thomas’s feet from under him, and the girl, flung aside in
his fall, swayed perilously on the edge of the jetty.
An agile figure darted past Cadfael with a flash of gold hair, leaped
another rolling cask as nimbly as a deer, and plucked her back to safety in a long
arm. The almost insolent grace and assurance was as familiar as the yellow
hair. Cadfael contented himself with helping Thomas to his feet, and drawing
him aside out of danger, and was not particularly surprised, when that was
done, to see that the long arm was still gallantly clasped round the girl’s
waist. Nor was she in any hurry to extricate herself. Indeed, she was gazing at
the smiling, comely, reassuring face of her rescuer wide-eyed, much as Philip
Corviser had gazed at her.
“There, you’re quite safe! But let me help you back aboard, you’d do best to
stay there a while, your uncle, too. I advise it, sir,” he said earnestly. “No
one will offer you further offence. With this lady beside you, no one could be
so ungallant,” he said, his eyes wide in candid admiration. The cream of the
girl’s fair skin turned all to rose.
Thomas of Bristol dusted himself down with slightly shaky hands, for he was
a big man, and had fallen heavily. “I thank you, sir, warmly, for your help.
You, too, brother. But my wines—my goods—”
“Leave them to us, sir. What can be salvaged, shall be. You stay safe
aboard, and wait. This cannot continue, the law will be out after these
turbulent young fools any moment. Half of them are off along the Foregate,
overturning stalls and hounding the abbey stewards. Before long they’ll be in
the town gaol with sore heads, wishing they’d had better sense than pick a
fight with the abbot of a Benedictine house.”
His eye was on Cadfael, who was busy righting and retrieving the fugitive
casks, and still within earshot. He felt himself being drawn companionably into
this masterful young man’s planning, perhaps as reassurance and guarantee of
respectability. The eyes were slightly mischievous, though the face retained
its decent gravity. The nearest Benedictine was being gently teased as
representative of his order.
“My name,” said the rescuer blithely, “is Ivo Corbière, of
the manor of Stanton Cobbold in this shire, though the main part of my honour
lies in Cheshire. If you’ll allow me, I’m happy to offer my help… ” He had
taken his arm from about the girl’s waist by then, decorously if reluctantly,
but his gaze continued to embrace and flatter her; she was well aware of it,
and it did not displease her. “There!” cried Corbière triumphantly, as a shrill
whistle resounded from a youth hanging over the parapet of the bridge above
them. “Now watch them dive to cover! Their look-out sees the sheriff’s men
turning out to quell the riot.”
His judgment was accurate enough. Half a dozen heads snapped up sharply at
the sound, noted the urgently waving arm, and half a dozen dishevelled youths
extricated themselves hastily from the fight, dropped whatever they were
holding, and made off at speed in several directions, some along the Gaye,
towards the coverts by the riverside, some up the slope into the tangle of
narrow lanes behind the Foregate, one under the arch of the bridge, to emerge
on the upstream side with no worse harm than wet feet. In a few moments the
sharp clatter of hooves drummed over the bridge, and half a dozen of the
sheriff’s men came trotting down to the jetty, while the rest of the company
swept on towards the horse-fair.
“As good as over!” said Ivo Corbière gaily. “Brother, will you lend an oar?
I fancy you know this river better than I, and there’s many a man’s hard-won
living afloat out there, and much of it may yet be saved.”
He asked no leave; he had selected already the smallest and most manageable
boat that swung beside the jetty, and he was across the boards and down into it
almost before the sheriff’s men had driven their mounts in among the
still-locked combatants, and begun to pluck the known natives out by the hair.
Brother Cadfael followed. With Compline but ten minutes away, by his mental
clock, he should have made his escape and left the salvage to this confident
and commanding young man, but he had been sent out here to aid a client of the
abbey fair, and could he not argue that he was still about the very same
business? He was in the borrowed boat, an oar in his hand and his eye upon the
nearest cask bobbing on the bright sunset waters, before he had
found an answer; which was answer enough.
The noise receded soon. Everyone left here was busily hooking bales and
bundles out of the river, pursuing some downstream to coves where they had
lodged, abandoning one or two small items too sodden and too vulnerable to be
saved, writing off minor losses, thankfully calculating profits still to be
made after fees and rentals and tolls were paid. The damage was not so great,
after all, it could be carried. Along the Foregate stalls were being righted,
goods laid out afresh. Doubtful if the pandemonium had ever reached the
horse-fair, where the great merchants unrolled their bales. In the stony confines
of the castle and the town gaol, no doubt, some dozen or so youngsters of the
town were nursing their bruises and grudges, and wondering how their noble and
dignified protest had disintegrated into such a shambles. As for Philip
Corviser, nobody knew where he had fetched up, once he shook off the devotees
who had helped him away from the jetty in a daze. The brief venture was over,
the cost not too great. Not even the sheriff, Gilbert Prestcote, was going to
bear down too hard on those well-meaning but ill-advised young men of Shrewsbury.
“Gentlemen,” said Thomas of Bristol, eased and expansive, “I cannot thank
you enough for such generous help. No, the casks will have taken no hurt. Those
who buy my wines should and do store them properly a good while before tapping,
their condition will not be impaired. The sugar confections, thanks be, were
not yet unloaded. No, I have suffered no real hurt. And my child here is much
in your debt. Come, my dear, don’t hide there within, make your respects to
such good friends! Let me present my niece Emma, my sister’s daughter, Emma
Vernold, heiress to her father, who was a master-mason in our city, and also to
me, for I have no other kin. Emma, my dear, you may pour the wine!”
The girl had made good use of the interval. She came forth now with her
braids of hair coiled in a gilded net on her neck, and a fine tunic of
embroidered linen over her plain gown. Not, thought Cadfael, for my benefit! It
was high time for him to take his leave and return to his proper duties. He had missed Compline in favour of retrieving goods from the waters,
and he would have to put in an hour or so in his workshop yet before he could
seek his bed. No one would be early to bed on this night, however. Thomas of
Bristol was not the man to leave the supervision of his booth and the
disposition of his goods to others, however trustworthy his three servants
might be; he would soon be off to the horse-fair to see everything safely
stowed to his own satisfaction, ready for the morrow. And if he thought fit to
leave those two handsome young people together here until his return, that was
his affair. Mention of the manor of Stanton Cobbold, and as the least part of Corbière’s
honour, at that, had made its impression. There had been no real need for that careful
mention of Mistress Emma’s prospective wealth; but dutiful uncles and guardians
must be ever on the alert for good matches for their girls, and this young man
was already taken with her face before ever he heard of her fortune. Small
wonder, she was a beautiful child by any standards.
Brother Cadfael excused himself from lingering, wished the company
goodnight, and walked back at leisure to the gatehouse. The Foregate stretched
busy and populous, but at peace. Order had been restored, and Saint Peter’s
Fair could open on the morrow without further disruption.
Chapter Four
Hugh Beringar came back from a final patrol along the Foregate well past ten o’clock, an hour when all dutiful brothers should have been fast asleep in the
dortoir. He was by no means surprised to find that Cadfael was not. They met in
the great court, as Cadfael came back from closing his workshop in the
herb-garden. It was still a clear twilight, and the west had a brilliant
afterglow.
“I hear you’ve been in the thick of it,” said Hugh, stretching and yawning.
“Did ever I know you when you were not? Mad young fools, what did they hope to
do, that their elders could not! And then to run wild as they did, and ruin
their case even with those who had sympathy for them! Now their sires will have
fines to pay, and the town lose more for the night’s work than ever it stood to
gain. Cadfael, I take no joy in heaving decent, silly lads into prison, I have
a foul taste in my mouth from it. Come into the gatehouse for a while, and
share a cup with me. You may as well stay awake until Matins now.”
“Aline will be waiting for you,” objected Cadfael.
“Aline, bless her good sense, will be fast asleep, for I’m bound to the
castle yet to report on this disturbance. I doubt I shall be there over the night.
Come and tell me how all this went wrong, for they tell me it began down at the
jetty, where you were.”
Cadfael went with him willingly. They sat together in the anteroom of the
gatehouse, and the porter, used to such nocturnal activities when the deputy
sheriff of the shire was lodged within, brought them wine, made
tolerant enquiry of progress, and left them to their colloquy.
“How many have you taken up?” asked Cadfael, when he had given an account of
what had happened by the river.
“Seventeen. And it should have been eighteen,” owned Hugh grimly, “if I had
not hauled Bellecote’s boy Edwy aside without witnesses, put the fear of God
into him, and sent him home with a flea in his ear. Not sixteen yet! But sharp
enough to know very well what he was about, the imp! I should not have done
it.”
“His father was one of yesterday’s delegates,” said Cadfael, “and he’s a
loyal child, as well as a bold one. I’m glad you let him away home. And young
Corviser?”
“No, we’ve not laid hand on him, though a dozen witnesses say he was the
ringleader, and captained the whole enterprise. But he has to go home some
time, and he’ll not get in at the gate a free man. Not a hope of it!”
“He came lecturing like a doctor,” said Cadfael seriously, “and never a
threatening move. It was when he was struck down that the wild lads took the
bit between their teeth and laid about them. I saw it! The man who struck him
lashed out in alarm, I grant you, but without cause.”
“I take your word for that, and I’ll stand by it. But he led the attack, and
he’ll end with the rest, as he should, seeing he loosed this on us all. They’ll
be bailed by their fathers, the lot of them,” said Hugh wearily, and passed
long fingers over tired eyelids. “Do I seem to you, Cadfael, to be turning
horribly into a crown official? That I should not like!”
“No,” said Cadfael judicially, “you’re not too far gone. Still a glint in
the eye and a quirk in the mind. You’ll do yet!”
“Gracious in you! And you say this Bristol merchant struck the silly wretch
down without provocation?”
“He imagined provocation. The boy laid a detaining hand on his arm from
behind, meaning no ill, but the man took fright. He had a staff in his hand, he
turned on him and hit out. Felled him like an ox! I doubt if he had the
strength to knock the trestle from under a stall, after that. For all I know,
he may be fallen out of his senses, somewhere, unless his friends have kept
their hands on him.”
Hugh looked at him across the trestle on which their own elbows
were spread, and smiled. “If ever I want for an advocate, I’ll come running to
you. Well, I do know the lad, he has a well-hung tongue, and lets it wag far
too freely, and he has a hot temper and a warm heart, and lets the pair of them
run away with his own sense—if you claim he has any!”
The lay porter put his bald brown crown and round red face into the room.
“My lord, there’s a lady here at the gate has a trouble on her mind, and asks a
word. One Mistress Emma Vernold, niece to the merchant Thomas of Bristol. Will
you have her come in?”
They looked at each other across the board with raised brows and startled
eyes. “The same man?” said Beringar, marvelling.
“The same man, surely! And the same girl! But the uproar was all over. What
can she be wanting here at this hour, and what’s her uncle about, letting her
venture loose into the night?”
“We’d best be finding out,” said Hugh, resigned. “Let the lady come in, if
I’m the man she wants.”
“She asked first for a guest here, Ivo Corbière , but I know he’s still out
viewing the preparations along the Foregate. And when I mentioned that you were
here, she begged a word with you. Glad to find the law here and awake,
seemingly.”
“Ask her to step in, then. And Cadfael, stay, if you’ll be so good, she’s
had speech with you already, she may be glad of a known face.”
Emma Vernold came in hurriedly yet hesitantly, unsure of herself in this
unfamiliar place, and made a hasty reverence. “My lord, I pray your pardon for
troubling you so late… ” She saw Brother Cadfael, and half-smiled, relieved but
distracted. “I am Emma Vernold, I came with my uncle, Thomas of Bristol, we
have our own living-space on his barge by the bridge. And this is my uncle’s
man Gregory.” It was the youngest of the three who attended her, a gawky, lean
but powerful fellow of about twenty.
Beringar took her by the hand and put her into a seat by the table. “I’m
here to serve you, as best I can. What’s your trouble?”
“Sir, my uncle went to see to the stocking of his booth at the horse-fair,
it was not long after the good brother here left us. You’ll have
heard all that happened, below there? My uncle went to join his other two men,
who were busy there before him, and left only Gregory with me. But that’s
nearly two hours ago, and he has not come back.”
“He will have brought a great deal of merchandise with him,” suggested Hugh
reasonably. “It takes time to arrange things to the best vantage, and I imagine
your uncle will have things done well.”
“Oh, yes, indeed he will. But it isn’t just that he is so long. The two men with
him were his journeyman, Roger Dod, and the porter Warin, and Warin sleeps in
the booth to mind the goods. Roger came back to the barge an hour ago, and was
surprised not to find my uncle back, for he said he left the booth well before
him. We thought perhaps he had met some acquaintance on the way, and stopped to
exchange the news with him, so we waited some while, but still he did not come.
And now I have been back to the booth with Gregory, to see if by some chance he
had turned back there for something, something forgotten, perhaps. But he has
not, and Warin says, as Roger does, that my uncle left first, intending to come
straight home to me, it being so late. He never liked—he does not like,” she
amended, paling, “for me to be alone with the men, without his company.” Her
eyes were steady and clear, but her lip quivered, and there was the faint
suggestion of disquiet even in the unflinching firmness of her regard.
She knows she is fair, Cadfael thought, and she’s right to take account of
it. It may even be that one of them—Roger Dod, the most privileged of the
three, perhaps?—has a fancy for her, and she knows that, too, and has no fancy
for him, and whether justly or not, is uneasy about being close to him without
her guardian by.
“And you are sure he has not made his way home by some other way,” asked
Hugh, “while you’ve been seeking him at his booth?”
“We went back. Roger waited there, for that very case, but no, he has not
come. I asked those still working in the Foregate if they had seen such a man,
but I could get no news. And then I thought that perhaps—” She turned in appeal
to Cadfael. “The young gentleman who was so kind, this
evening—he is staying here in the guest-hall, so he told us. I wondered if
perhaps my uncle had met him again on his way home, and lingered… And he, at
least, knows his looks, and could tell me if he has seen him. But he is not yet
back, they tell me.”
“He left the jetty earlier than your uncle, then?” asked Cadfael. The young
man had looked very well settled to spend a pleasant hour or two in the lady’s
company, but perhaps her formidable uncle had ways of conveying, even to lords
of respectable honours, that his niece was to be approached only when he was
present to watch over her.
Emma flushed, but without averting her eyes; eyes which were seen to be
thoughtful, resolute and intelligent, for all her milk-and-roses baby-face.
“Very soon after you, brother. He was at all points correct and kind. I thought
to come and ask for him, as someone on whom I could rely.”
“I’ll ask the porter to keep a watch for him,” offered Cadfael, “and have
him step in here when he returns. Even the horse-fair should be on its way to
bed by now, and he’ll be needing his own sleep if he’s to hunt the best
bargains tomorrow, which is what I take it he’s here for. What do you say,
Hugh?”
“A good thought,” said Hugh. “Do it, and we’ll make provision to look for
Master Thomas, though I trust all’s well with him, for all this delay. The eve
of a fair,” he said, smiling reassurance at the girl, “and there are contacts
to be made, customers already looking over the ground… A man can forget about
his sleep with his mind on business.”
Brother Cadfael heard her sigh: “Oh, yes!” with genuine hope and gratitude,
as he went to bid the porter intercept Ivo Corbière when he came in. His errand
could hardly have been better timed, for the man himself appeared in the
gateway. The main gate was already closed, only the wicket stood open, and the
dip of the gold head stepping through caught the light from the torch overhead,
and burned like a minor sun. Bare-headed, with his cotte slung on one shoulder
in the warm last night of July, Ivo Corbière strolled towards his bed almost
rebelliously, with a reserve of energy still unspent. The snowy linen shirt
glowed in the lambent dark with a ghostly whiteness. He was whistling a street
tune, more likely Parisian than out of London, by the cadence of
it. He had certainly drunk reasonably deep, but not beyond his measure, nor
even up to it. He was alert at a word.
“What, you, brother? Out of bed before Matins?” Amiable though his soft
laughter was, he checked it quickly, sensing something demanding gravity of
him. “You were looking for me? Something worse fell out? Good God, the old man
never killed the fool boy, did he?”
“Nothing so dire,” said Cadfael. “But there’s one within here at the
gatehouse came looking for you, with a question. You’ve been about the Foregate
and the fairground all this time?”
“The whole round,” said Ivo, his attention sharpening. “I have a new and draughty
manor to furnish in Cheshire. I’m looking for woollens and Flemish tapestries.
Why?”
“Have you seen, in your wanderings, Master Thomas of Bristol? At any time
since you left his barge earlier this evening?”
“I have not,” said Ivo, wondering, and peered closely in the strange, soft
light of midsummer, an hour short of midnight.
“What is this? The man made it clear—he has practice, which is no
marvel!—that his girl is to be seen only in his presence and with his sanction,
and small blame to him, for she’s gold, with or without his gold. I respected
him for it, and I left. Why? What follows?”
“Come and see,” said Cadfael simply, and led the way within.
The young man blinked in the sudden light, and opened his eyes wide upon
Emma. It was a question which of them showed the more distracted. The girl
rose, reaching eager hands and then half-withdrawing them. The man sprang
forward solicitously to welcome the clasp.
“Mistress Vernold! At this hour? Should you… ” He had a grasp of the company
and the urgency by then. “What has happened?” he asked, and looked at Beringar.
Briskly, Beringar told him. Cadfael was not greatly surprised to see that Corbière
was relieved rather than dismayed. Here was a young, inexperienced girl,
growing nervous all too easily when she was left alone an hour or so too long, while no doubt her uncle, very travelled and experienced indeed,
and well able to take care of himself, was in no sort of trouble at all, but
merely engaged in a little social indulgence with a colleague, or busy assessing
the goods and worldly state of some of his rivals.
“Nothing ill will have happened to him,” said Corbière cheerfully, smiling
reassurance at Emma, who remained, for all that, grave and anxious of eye. And
she was no fool, Cadfael reflected, watching, and knew her uncle better than
anyone else here could claim to know him. “You’ll see, he’ll come home in his
own good time, and be astonished to find you so troubled for him.”
She wanted to believe it, but her eyes said she could not be sure. “I hoped
he might have met you again,” she said, “or that at least you might have seen
him.”
“I wish it were so,” he said. “It would have been my pleasure to set your
mind at rest. But I have not seen him.”
“I think,” said Beringar, “this lies now with me. I have still half a dozen
men here within the walls, we’ll make a search for Master Thomas. In the
meantime, the hour is late, and you should not be wandering in the night. It
will be best if your man here returns to the barge, while you, madam, if you
consent, can very well join my wife, here in the guest-hall. Her maid Constance
will make room for you, and find you whatever you need over the night.” There
was no knowing whether he had noted her uneasiness about returning to the
barge, just as acutely as Cadfael had, or was simply placing her in the nearest
safe charge, and the best; but she brightened so eagerly, and thanked him so
fervently, that there was no mistaking the relief she felt.
“Come, then,” he said gently, “I’ll see you safely into Constance’s care,
and then you may leave the searching to us.”
“And I,” said Corbière , shrugging enthusiastically into the sleeves of his
cotte, “will bear a hand with you in the hunt, if you’ll have me.”
They combed the whole length of the Foregate, Beringar, with his six
men-at-arms, Ivo Corbière, as energetic and wide-awake as at noon, and Brother
Cadfael, who had no legitimate reason to go with them at all,
beyond the pricking of his thumbs, and the manifest absurdity of going to his
bed at such an hour, when he would in any case have to rise again at midnight
for Matins. If that was excuse enough for sharing a drink with Beringar, it was
excuse enough for taking part in the hunt for Thomas of Bristol. For truly,
thought Cadfael, shaking his head over the drastic events of the evening, I
shall not be easy until I see that meaty blue-jowled face again, and hear that
loud, self-confident voice. Corbière might shrug off the merchant’s non-return
as a mere trivial departure from custom, such as every man makes now and again,
and on any other day Cadfael would have agreed with him; but too much had
happened since noon today, too many people had been trapped into outrageous and
uncharacteristic actions, too many passions had been let loose, for this to be
an ordinary day. It was even possible that someone had stepped so far aside
from his usual self as to commit deliberate violence by stealth in the night,
to avenge what had been done openly and impulsively in the day. Though God
forbid!
They had begun by making certain that there was still no word or sign at the
jetty. No, Thomas had neither appeared nor sent word, and Roger Dod’s forays
among the other traders along the riverside, as far as he dared go from the
property he guarded, had elicited no news of his master.
He was a burly, well-set-up young man of about thirty, this Roger Dod, and
very personable, if he had not been so curt and withdrawn in manner. No doubt
he was anxious, too. He answered Hugh’s questions in the fewest possible words,
and gnawed an uncertain lip at hearing that his master’s niece was now lodged
in the abbey guest-hall. He would have come with them to help in their search,
but he was responsible for his master’s belongings, and would have to be
answerable for their safety when his master returned. He stayed with the barge,
and sent the mute and sleepily resentful Gregory to lead them straight to the
booth Master Thomas had rented. Beringar’s sergeant, with three men, was left
behind to work his way gradually along the Foregate after them, questioning
every waking stallholder as he went, while the rest followed the porter to the
fairground. The great open space was by this time half-asleep, but still
winking with occasional torches and braziers, and murmuring with
subdued voices. For these three days in the year it was transformed into a
tight little town, busy and populous, to vanish again on the fourth day.
Thomas had chosen a large booth almost in the centre of the triangular
ground. His goods were neatly stacked within, and his watchman was awake and
prowling the ground uneasily, to welcome the arrival of authority with relief.
Warm was a leathery, middle-aged man, who had clearly been in his present
service many years, and was probably completely trusted within his limits, but
had not the ability ever to rise to the position Roger Dod now held.
“No, my lord,” he said anxiously, “never a word since, and I’ve been on
watch every moment. He set off for his barge a good quarter of an hour before
Roger left. We had everything stowed to his liking, he was well content. And
he’d had a fall not so long before—you’d know of that?— and was glad enough,
I’d say, to be off home to his bed. For after all, he’s none so young, no more
than I am, and he carried more weight.”
“And he set off from here, which way?”
“Why, straight to the highroad, close by here. I suppose he’d keep along the
Foregate.”
Behind Cadfael’s shoulder a familiar voice, rich and full and merrily
knowing, said in Welsh: “Well, well, brother, out so late? And keeping the law
company! What would the deputy sheriff of the shire want with Thomas of
Bristol’s watchman at this hour? Are they on the scent of all Gloucester’s
familiars, after all? And I claimed commerce was above the anarchy!” Narrowed
eyes twinkled at Cadfael in the light of the dispersed torches and the
far-distant stars in a perfect midsummer sky. Rhodri ap Huw was chuckling
softly and fatly at his own teasing wit and menacing sharpness of apprehension.
“You keep a friendly eye out for your neighbours?” said Cadfael, innocently
approving. “I see you brought off all your own goods without scathe.”
“I have a nose for trouble, and the good sense to step out of its way,” said
Rhodri ap Huw smugly. “What’s come to Thomas of Bristol? He was not so quick on
the scent, it seems. He could have loosed his mooring and poled
out into the river till the flurry was over, and been as safe as in the west
country.”
“Did you see him struck down?” asked Cadfael deceitfully; but Rhodri was not
to be caught.
“I saw him strike down the other young fool,” he said, and grinned. “Why,
did he come to grief after I left? And which of them is it you’re looking for,
Thomas or the lad?” And he stared with marked interest to see the sheriff’s men
probing at the backs of stalls, and under the trestles, and followed inquisitively
on their heels as they worked their way back along the highroad. Evidently
nothing of moment was to be allowed to happen at this fair without Rhodri ap
Huw being present at it, or very quickly and minutely informed of it. And why
not make use of, his perspicacity?
“Thomas’s niece is in a taking because he has not come back to his barge.
That might mean anything or nothing, but now it’s gone on so long, his men are
getting uneasy, too. Did you see him leave his booth?”
“I did. It might be as much as two hours ago. And his journeyman some little
while after him. A fair size of a man, to be lost between here and the river.
And no word of him anywhere since then?”
“Not that we’ve found, or likely to find, without questioning every trader
and every idler in all this array. And the wiser half of them getting their
sleep in ready for the morning.”
They had reached the Foregate and turned towards the town, and still Rhodri
strode companionably beside Cadfael, and had taken to peering into the dark
spaces between stalls just as the sheriff’s men were doing. Lights and braziers
were fewer here, and the stalls more modest, and the quiet of the night closed
in drowsily. On their left, under the abbey wall, a few compact but secure
booths were arrayed. The first of them, though completely closed in and barred
for the night, showed through a chink the light of a candle within. Rhodri dug
a weighty elbow into Cadfael’s ribs.
“Euan of Shotwick! No one is ever going to get at him from the rear, he
likes a corner backed into two walls if he can get it. Travels alone with a
pack-pony, and wears a weapon, and can use it, too. A solitary soul because he
trusts nobody. His own porter—luckily his wares weigh light for
their value—and his own watchman.”
Ivo Corbière had loitered to go aside between the stalls, some of which in
this stretch were still unoccupied, waiting for the local traders who would
come with the dawn. The consequent darkness slowed their search, and the young
man, not at all averse to spending the night without sleep, and probably
encouraged by the memory of Emma’s bright eyes, was tireless and thorough. Even
Cadfael and Rhodri ap Huw were some yards ahead of him when they heard him cry
after them, high and urgently:
“Good God, what’s here? Beringar, come back here!”
The tone was enough to bring them running. Corbière had left the highway,
probing between stacked trestles and leaning canvas awnings into darkness, but
when they peered close there was lambent light enough from the stars for
accustomed eyes to see what he had seen. From beneath a light wooden frame and
stretched canvas jutted two booted feet, motionless, toes pointed skywards. For
a moment they all stared in silence, dumbstruck, for truth to tell, not one of
them had believed that the merchant could have come to any harm, as they all
agreed afterwards. Then Beringar took hold of the frame and hoisted it away
from the trestles against which it leaned, and dim and large in the darkness
they saw a man’s long shape, from the knees up rolled in a cloak that hid the
face. There was no movement, and no noticeable sound.
The sergeant leaned in with the one torch they had brought with them, and
Beringar reached a hand to the folds of the cloak, and began to draw them back
from the shrouded head and shoulders. The movement of the cloth released a
powerful wave of an odour that made him halt and draw suspicious breath. It
also disturbed the body, which emitted an enormous snore, and a further gust of
spirituous breath.
“Dead drunk and helpless,” said Beringar, relieved. “And not, I fancy, the
man we’re looking for. The state he’s in, this fellow must have been here some
hours already, and if he comes round in time to crawl away before dawn it will
be a miracle. Let’s have a look at him.” He was less gingerly now in dragging
the cloak away, but the drunken man let himself be hauled about and dragged
forth by the feet with only a few disturbed grunts, and subsided into
stertorous sleep again as soon as he was released. The torch
shone its yellow, resinous light upon a shock-head of coarse auburn hair, a
pair of wide shoulders in a leather jerkin, and a face that might have been
sharp, lively and even comely when he was awake and sober, but now looked
bloated and idiotic, with open, slobbering mouth and reddened eyes.
Corbière took one close look at him, and let out a gasp and an oath. “Fowler!
Devil take the sot! Is this how he obeys me? By God, I’ll make him sweat for
it!” And he filled a fist with the thick brown hair and shook the fellow
furiously, but got no more out of him than a louder snort, the partial opening
of one glazed eye, and a wordless mumble that subsided again as soon as he was
dropped, disgustedly and ungently, back into the turf.
“This drunken rogue is mine… my falconer and archer, Turstan Fowler,” said
Ivo bitterly, and kicked the sleeper in the ribs but not savagely. What was the
use? The man would not be conscious for hours yet, and what he suffered
afterwards would pay him all his dues. “I’ve a mind to put him to cool in the
river! I never gave him leave to quit the abbey precinct, and by the look of
him he’s been out and drinking— Good God, the reek of it, what raw spirit can
it be?—since ever I turned my back.”
“One thing’s certain,” said Hugh, amused, “he’s in no case to walk back to
his bed. Since he’s yours, what will you have done with him? I would not advise
leaving him here. If he has anything of value on him, even his hose, he might
be without it by morning. There’ll be scavengers abroad in the dark hours—no
fair escapes them.”
Ivo stood back and stared down disgustedly at the oblivious culprit. “If
you’ll lend me two of your men, and let us borrow a board here, we’ll haul him
back and toss him into one of the abbey’s punishment cells, to sleep off his
swinishness on the stones, and serve him right. If we leave him there unfed all
the morrow, it may frighten him into better sense. Next time, I’ll have his
hide!”
They hoisted the sleeper on to a board, where he sprawled aggravatingly into
ease again, and snored his way along the Foregate so blissfully that his
bearers were tempted to tip him off at intervals, by way of recompensing
themselves for their own labour. Cadfael, Beringar and the remainder of the
party were left looking after them somewhat ruefully, their own
errand still unfulfilled.
“Well, well!” said Rhodri ap Huw softly into Cadfael’s ear, “Euan of
Shotwick is taking a modest interest in the evening’s happenings, after all!”
Cadfael turned to look, and in the shuttered booth tucked under the wall a
hatch had certainly opened, and against the pale light of a candle a head
leaned out in sharp outline, staring towards where they stood. He recognised
the high-bridged, haughty nose, the deceptively meagre slant of the lean
shoulders, before the hatch was drawn silently to again, and the glover
vanished.
They worked their way doggedly, yard by yard, all the way back to the
riverside, where Roger Dod was waiting in a fume of anxiety, but they found no
trace of Thomas of Bristol.
A late boat coming up the Severn from Buildwas next day, and tying up at the
bridge about nine in the morning, delayed its unloading of a cargo of pottery
to ask first that a message be sent to the sheriff, for they had other cargo
aboard, taken up out of a cove near Atcham, which would be very much the
sheriff’s business. Gilbert Prestcote, busy with other matters, sent from the
castle his own sergeant, with orders to report first to Hugh Beringar at the
abbey.
The particular cargo the potter had to deliver lay rolled in a length of
coarse sail-cloth in the bottom of the boat, and oozed water in a dark stain
over the boards. The boatman unfolded the covering, and displayed to Beringar’s
view the body of a heavily-built man of some fifty to fifty-five years, fleshy,
with thinning, grizzled hair and bristly, bluish jowls, his pouchy features
sagging doughily in death. Master Thomas of Bristol, stripped of his elaborate
capuchon, his handsome gown, his rings and his dignity, as naked as the day he
was born.
“We saw his whiteness bobbing under the bank,” said the potter, looking down
upon his salvaged man, “and poled in to pick him up, the poor soul. I can show
you the place, this side of the shallows and the island at Atcham. We thought
best to bring him here, as we would a drowned man. But this one,” he said very
soberly, “did not drown.”
No, Thomas of Bristol had not drowned. That was already
evident from the very fact that he had been stripped of everything he had on,
and hardly by his own hands or will. But also, even more certainly, from the
incredibly narrow wound under his left shoulder-blade, washed white and closed
by the river, where a very fine, slender dagger had transfixed him and
penetrated to his heart.
The First Day of the Fair
Chapter One
The first day of Saint Peter’s Fair was in full swing, and the merry,
purposeful hum of voices bargaining, gossiping and crying wares came over the
wall into the great court, and in at the gatehouse, like the summer music of a
huge hive of bees on a sunny day. The sound pursued Hugh Beringar back to the
apartment in the guest-hall, where his wife and Emma Vernold were very
pleasurably comparing the virtues of various wools, and the maid Constance, who
was an expert spinstress, was fingering the samples critically and giving her
advice.
On this domestic scene, which had brought back the fresh colour to Emma’s
cheeks and the animation to her voice, Hugh’s sombre face cast an instant
cloud. There was no time for breaking news circuitously, nor did he think that
this girl would thank him for going roundabout.
“Mistress Vernold, my news is ill, and I grieve for it. God knows I had not
expected this. Your uncle is found. A boat coming up early this morning from
Buildwas picked up his body from the river.”
The colour ebbed from her face. She stood with frightened, helpless eyes
gazing blindly before her. The prop of her life had suddenly been plucked away,
and for a moment it seemed that all balance was lost to her, and she might
indeed fall for want of him. But by the time she had drawn breath deep, and
shaped soundlessly: “Dead!” it was clear that she was firm on her own feet
again, and in no danger of falling. Her eyes, once the momentary
panic and dizziness passed, looked straight at Hugh and made no appeal.
“Drowned?” she said. “But he swam well, he was raised by the river. And if
he drank at all, it was sparingly. I do not believe he could fall into Severn
and drown. Not of himself!” she said, and her large eyes dilated.
“Sit down,” said Hugh gently, “for we must talk a little, and then I shall
leave you with Aline, for of course you must remain here in our care for this
while. No, he did not drown. Nor did he come by his death of himself. Master
Thomas was stabbed from behind, stripped, and put into the river after death.”
“You mean,” she said, in a voice low and laboured, but quite steady, “he was
waylaid and killed by mere sneak-thieves, for what he had on him? For his rings
and his gown and his shoes?”
“It is what leaps to the mind. There are no roads in England now that can be
called safe, and no great fair that has not its probable underworld of
hangers-on, who will kill for a few pence.”
“My uncle was not a timid man. He has fought off more than one attack in his
time, and he never avoided a journey for fear in his life. After all these
years,” she said, her voice aching with protest, “why should he fall victim now
to such scum? And yet what else can it be?”
“There are some people recalling,” said Hugh, “that there was an ugly
incident on the jetty last evening, and violence was done to a number of the
merchants who were unloading goods and setting up stalls for the fair. It’s
common knowledge there was bad blood between town and traders, of whom Master
Thomas was perhaps the most influential. He was involved bitterly with the
young man who led the raid. An attack made in revenge, by night, perhaps in a
drunken rage, might end mortally, whether it was meant or no.”
“Then he would have been left where he lay,” said Emma sharply. “His
attacker would think only of getting clean away unseen. Those angry people were
not thieves, only townsmen with a grievance. A grievance might turn them into
murderers, but I do not think it would turn them into thieves.”
Hugh was beginning to feel considerable respect for this girl, as Aline, by
her detached silence and her attentive face, had already learned
to do. “I won’t say but I agree with you there,” he admitted. “But it might
well occur to a young man turned murderer almost by mishap, to dress his crime
as the common sneak killing for robbery. It opens so wide a field. Twenty young
men bitterly aggrieved and hot against your uncle for his scorn of them could
be lost among a thousand unknown, and the most unlikely suspects among them, at
that, if this passes as chance murder for gain.”
Even in the bleak newness of her bereavement, this thought troubled her. She
bit a hesitant lip. “You think it may have been one of those young men? Or more
of them together? That they burned with their grudge until they followed him in
the dark, and took this way?”
“It’s being both thought and said,” owned Hugh, “by many people who
witnessed what happened by the river.”
“But the sheriff’s men,” she pointed out, frowning, “surely took up many of
those young men long before my uncle went to the fairground. If they were
already in prison, they could not have harmed him.”
“True of most of them. But the one who led them was not taken until the
small hours of the morning, when he came reeling back to the town gate, where
he was awaited. He is in a cell in the castle now, like his fellows, but he was
still at liberty long after Master Thomas failed to come back to you, and he is
under strong suspicion of this death. The whole pack of them will come before
the sheriff this afternoon. The rest, I fancy, will be let out on their
fathers’ bail, to answer the charges later. But for Philip Corviser, I greatly
doubt it. He will need to have better answers than he was able to give when
they took him.”
“This afternoon!” echoed Emma. “Then I should also attend. I was a witness
when this turmoil began. The sheriff should hear my testimony, too, especially
if my uncle’s death is in question. There were others—Master Corbière , and the
brother of the abbey, the one you know well… ”
“They will be attending, and others besides. Certainly your witness would be
valuable, but to ask it of you at such a time… ”
“I would rather!” she said firmly. “I want my uncle’s murderer caught, if
indeed he was murdered, but I pray no innocent man may be too hurriedly blamed.
I don’t know—I would not have thought he looked like a murderer…
I should like to tell what I do know, it is my duty.”
Beringar cast a brief glance at his wife for enlightenment, and Aline gave
him a smile and the faintest of nods.
“If you are resolved on that,” he said, reassured, “I will ask Brother
Cadfael to escort you. And for the rest, you need have no anxieties about your
own situation. It will be necessary for you to stay here until this matter is
looked into, but naturally you will remain here in Aline’s company, and you
shall have every possible help in whatever dispositions you need to make.”
“I should like,” said Emma, “to take my uncle’s body back by the barge to Bristol
for burial.” She had not considered, until then, that there would be no
protector for her on the boat this time, only Roger Dod, whose mute but
watchful and jealous devotion was more than she could bear, Warin who would
take care to notice nothing that might cause him trouble, and poor Gregory, who
was strong and able of body but very dull of wit. She drew in breath sharply,
and bit an uncertain lip, and the shadow came back to her eyes. “At least, to
send him back… His man of law there will take care of his affairs and mine.”
“I have spoken to the prior. Abbot Radulfus sanctions the use of an abbey
chapel, your uncle’s body can lie there when he is brought from the castle, and
all due preparations will be made for his decent coffining. Ask for anything
you want, it shall be at your disposal. I must summon your journeyman to attend
at the castle this afternoon, too. How would you wish him to deal, concerning
the fair? I will give him whatever instructions you care to send.”
She nodded understanding, visibly bracing herself again towards a world of
shrewd daily business which had not ceased with the ending of a life. “Be so
kind as to tell him,” she said, “to continue trading for the three days of the
fair, as though his master still presided. My uncle would scorn to go aside
from his regular ways for any danger or loss, and so will I in his name.” And
suddenly, as freely and as simply as a small child, she burst into tears at
last.
When Hugh was gone about his business, and Constance had withdrawn at
Aline’s nod, the two women sat quietly until Emma had ceased to
weep, which she did as suddenly as she had begun. She wept, as some women have
the gift of doing, without in the least defacing her own prettiness and without
caring whether she did or no. Most lose the faculty, after the end of
childhood. She dried her eyes, and looked up straightly at Aline, who was
looking back at her just as steadily, with a serenity which offered comfort
without pressing it.
“You must think,” said Emma, “that I had no deep affection for my uncle. And
indeed I don’t know myself that you would be wrong. And yet I did love him, it
has not been only loyalty and gratitude, though those came easier. He was a
hard man, people said, hard to satisfy, and hard in his business dealings. But
he was not hard to me. Only hard to come near. It was not his fault, or mine.”
“I think,” said Aline mildly, since she was being invited closer, “you loved
him as much as he would let you. As he could let you. Some men have not
the gift.”
“Yes. But I would have liked to love him more. I would have done anything to
please him. Even now I want to do everything as he would have wished. We shall
keep the booth open as long as the fair lasts, and try to do it as well as he
would have done. All that he had in hand, I want to see done thoroughly.” Her
voice was resolute, almost eager. Master Thomas would certainly have approved
the set of her chin and the spark in her eye. “Aline, shall I not be a trouble
to you by staying here? I—my uncle’s men—there’s one who likes me too well… ”
“So I had thought,” said Aline. “You’re most welcome here, and we’ll not
part with you until you can be sent back safely to Bristol, and your home. Not
that I can find it altogether blameworthy in the young man to like you, for
that matter,” she added, smiling.
“No, but I cannot like him well enough. Besides, my uncle would never
have allowed me to be there on the barge without him. And now I have duties,”
said Emma, rearing her head determinedly and staring the uncertain future
defiantly in the face. “I must see to the ordering of a fine coffin for him,
for the journey home. There will be a master-carpenter, somewhere in the town?”
“There is. To the right, halfway up the Wyle, Master Martin Bellecote. A
good man, and a good craftsman. His lad was among these terrible
rioters, as I hear,” said Aline, and dimpled indulgently at the thought, “but
so were half the promising youth of the town. I’ll come in with you to Martin’s
shop.”
“No,” said Emma firmly. “It will all be tedious and long at the sheriff’s
court, and you should not tire yourself. And besides, you have to buy your fine
wools, before the best are taken. And Brother Cadfael—was that the name?—will
show me where to find the shop. He will surely know.”
“There’s very little to be known about this precinct and the town of Shrewsbury,”
agreed Aline with conviction, “that Brother Cadfael does not know.”
Cadfael received the abbot’s dispensation to attend the hearing at the
castle, and to escort the abbey’s bereaved guest, without question. A civic
duty could not be evaded, whether by secular or monastic. Radulfus had already
shown himself both an austere but just disciplinarian and a shrewd and
strong-minded business man. He owed his preferment to the abbacy as much to the
king as to the papal legate, and valued and feared for the order of the realm at
least as keenly as for the state of his own cure. Consequently, he had a use
for those few among the brothers who shared his wide experience of matters
outside the cloister.
“This death,” he said, closeted with Cadfael alone after Beringar’s
departure, “casts a shadow upon our house and our fair. Such a burden cannot be
shifted to other shoulders. I require of you a full account of what passes at
this hearing. It was of me that the elders of the town asked a relief I could
not grant. On me rests the load of resentment that drove those younger men to
foolish measures. They lacked patience and thought, and they were to blame, but
that does not absolve me. If the man’s death has arisen out of my act, even
though I could not act otherwise, I must know it, for I have to answer for it,
as surely as the man who struck him down.”
“I shall bring you all that I myself see and hear, Father Abbot,” said
Cadfael.
“I require also all that you think, brother. You saw part of what happened
yesterday between the dead man and the living youth. Is it possible that it
could have brought about such a death as this? Stabbed in the
back? It is not commonly the method of anger.”
“Not commonly.” Cadfael had seen many deaths in the open anger of battle,
but he knew also of rages that had bred and festered into killings by stealth,
with the anger as hot as ever, but turned sour by brooding. “Yet it is
possible. But there are other possibilities. It may indeed be what it first
seems, a mere crude slaughter for the clothes on the body and the rings on the
fingers, opportune plunder in the night, when no one chanced to be by. Such
things happen, where men are gathered together and there is money changing
hands.”
“It is true,” said Radulfus, coldly and sadly. “The ancient evil is always
with us.”
“Also, the man is of great importance in his trade and his region, and he
may have enemies. Hate, envy, rivalry, are as powerful motives even as gain.
And at a great fair such as ours, enemies may be brought together, far from the
towns where their quarrels are known, and their acts might be guessed at too
accurately. Murder is easier and more tempting, away from home.”
“Again, true,” said the abbot. “Is there more?”
“There is. There is the matter of the girl, niece and heiress to the dead
man. She is of great beauty,” said Cadfael plainly, asserting his right to
recognise and celebrate even the beauty of women, though their enjoyment he had
now voluntarily forsworn, “and there are three men in her uncle’s service, shut
on board a river barge with her. Only one of them old enough, it may be, to
value his peace more. One, I think, God’s simpleton, but not therefore blind,
or delivered from the flesh. And one whole, able, every way a man, and enslaved
to her. And this one it was who followed his master from the booth on the
fairground, some say a quarter of an hour after him, some say a little more.
God forbid I should therefore point a finger at an honest man. But we speak of
possibilities. And will speak of them no more until, or unless, they become more
than possibilities.”
“That is my mind, also,” said Abbot Radulfus, stirring and almost smiling.
He looked at Cadfael steadily and long. “Go and bear witness, brother, as you
are charged, and bring me word again. In your report I shall set my trust.”
Emma had on, perforce, the same gown and bliaut she had worn
the evening before, the gown dark blue like her eyes, but the tunic embroidered
in many colours upon bleached linen. The only concession she could make to
mourning was to bind up her great wealth of hair, and cover it from sight
within a borrowed wimple. Nevertheless, she made a noble mourning figure. In
the severe white frame her rounded, youthful face gained in concentrated force
and meaning what it lost in pure grace. She had a look of single-minded
gravity, like a lance in rest. Brother Cadfael could not yet see clearly where
the lance was aimed.
When she caught sight of him approaching, she looked at him with pleased
recognition, as the man behind the lance might have looked round at the fixed,
partisan faces of his friends before the bout, but never shifted the focus of
her soul’s intent, which reached out where he could not follow.
“Brother Cadfael—have I your name right? It’s Welsh, is it not? You were
kind, yesterday. Lady Beringar says you will show me where to find the
master-carpenter. I have to order my uncle’s coffin, to take him back to Bristol.”
She was quite composed, yet still as simple and direct as a child. “Have we
time, before we must go to the castle?”
“It’s on the way,” said Cadfael comfortably. “You need only tell Martin
Bellecote, whatever you ask of him he’ll see done properly.”
“Everyone is being very kind,” she said punctiliously, like a well
brought-up little girl giving due thanks. “Where is my uncle’s body now? I
should care for it myself, it is my duty.”
“That you cannot yet,” said Cadfael. “The sheriff has him at the castle, he
must needs see the body for himself, and have the physician also view it. You
need be put to no distress on that account, the abbot has given orders. Your
uncle will be brought with all reverence to lie in the church here, and the
brothers will make him decent for burial. I think he might well wish, could he
tell you so now, that you should leave all to us. His care for you would reach
so far, and your obedience could not well deny him.”
Cadfael had seen the dead man, and felt strongly that she should not have
the same experience. Nor was it for her sake entirely that he
willed so. The man she had respected and admired in his monumental dignity, living,
had the right to be preserved for her no less decorously in death.
He had found the one argument that could deflect her absolute determination
to take charge of all, and escape nothing. She thought about it seriously as
they passed out at the gatehouse side by side, and he knew by her face the
moment when she accepted it.
“But he did believe that I ought to take my full part, even in his business.
He wished me to travel with him, and learn the trade as he knew it. This is the
third such journey I have made with him.” That reminded her that it must also
be the last. “At least,” she said hesitantly, “I may give money to have Masses
said for him, here where he died? He was a very devout man, I think he would
like that.”
Well, her reserves of money might now be far longer than her reserves of
peace of mind were likely to be; she could afford to buy herself a little
consolation, and prayers are never wasted.
“That you may surely do.”
“He died unshriven,” she said, with sudden angry grief against the murderer
who had deprived him of confession and absolution.
“Through no fault of his own. So do many. So have saints, martyred without
warning. God knows the record without needing word or gesture. It’s for the
soul facing death that the want of shriving is pain. The soul gone beyond knows
that pain for needless vanity. Penitence is in the heart, not in the words
spoken.”
They were out on the highroad then, turning left towards the reflected
sparkle that was the river between its green, lush banks, and the stone bridge
over it, that led through the drawbridge turret to the town gate. Emma had
raised her head, and was looking at Brother Cadfael along her shoulder, with
faint colour tinting her creamy cheeks, and a sparkle like a shimmer of light
from the river in her eyes. He had not seen her smile until this moment, and
even now it was a very wan smile, but none the less beautiful.
“He was a good man, you know, Brother Cadfael,” she said earnestly. “He was
not easy upon fools, or bad workmen, or people who cheated, but he was a good
man, good to me! And he kept his bargains, and he was loyal to
his lord… ” She had taken fire, for all the softness of her voice and the
simplicity of her plea for him; it was almost as though she had been about to
say “loyal to his lord to the death!” She had that high, heroic look about her,
to be taken very seriously, even on that child’s face.
“All which,” said Cadfael cheerfully, “God knows, and needs not to be told.
And never forget you’ve a life to live, and he’d want you to do him justice by
doing yourself justice.”
“Oh, yes!” said Emma, glowing, and for the first time laid her hand
confidingly on his sleeve. “That’s what I want! That’s what I have most in
mind!”
Chapter Two
At Martin Bellecote’s shop, off the curve of the rising street called the
Wyle, which led to the centre of the town, she knew exactly what she wanted for
her dead, and ordered it clearly; more, she knew how to value a matching
clarity and forthrightness in the master-carpenter, and yet had time to be
pleasantly distracted by the invasion of his younger children, who liked the
look of her and came boldly to chatter and stare. As for the delinquent Edwy,
sent home overnight after his tongue-lashing from Hugh Beringar, the youngster
worked demurely with a plane in a corner of the shop, and was not too subdued
to cast inquisitive glances of bright hazel eyes at the lady, and one impudent
wink at Brother Cadfael when Emma was not noticing.
On the way through the town, up the steep street to the High Cross, and down
the gentler slope beyond to the ramp which led up to the castle gateway, she
fell into a thoughtful silence, putting in order her recollections. The shadow
of the gate falling upon her serious face and cutting off the sunlight caused
her eyes to dilate in awe; but the casual traffic of the watch here was no
longer reminiscent of siege and battle, but easy and brisk, and the townspeople
went in and out freely with their requests and complaints. The sheriff was a
strong-minded, taciturn, able knight past fifty, and old in experience of both
war and office, and while he could be heavy-handed in crushing disorder, he was
trusted to be fair in day to day matters. If he had not given the goodmen of
the town much help in making good the dilapidations due to the siege, neither had he permitted them to be misused or heavily taxed to restore the
damage to the castle. In the great court one tower was still caged in timber
scaffolding, one wall shored up with wooden buttresses. Emma gazed, great-eyed.
There were others going the same way with them, anxious fathers here to bail
their sons, two of the abbey stewards who had been assaulted in the affray,
witnesses from the bridge and the jetty, all being ushered through to the inner
ward, and a chill, stony hall hung with smoky tapestries. Cadfael found Emma a
seat on a bench against the wall, where she sat looking about her with anxious
eyes but lively interest.
“Look, there’s Master Corbière!”
He was just entering the hall, and for the moment had no attention to spare
for anyone but the hunched figure that slouched before him; blear-eyed but in
his full wits today, going softly in awe of his irate lord, Turstan Fowler made
his powerful form as small and unobtrusive as possible, and mustered patience
until the storm should blow over. And what had he to do here, Cadfael wondered.
He had not been on the jetty, and by the state in which he had been found near midnight, his memories of yesterday should in any case be vague indeed. Yet he must have
something to say to the purpose, or Corbière would not have brought him here.
By his mood last night, he had meant to leave him locked up all day, to teach
him better sense.
“Is this the sheriff?” whispered Emma.
Gilbert Prestcote had entered, with a couple of lawmen at his elbows to
advise him on the legalities. This was no trial but it rested with him whether
the rioters would go home on their own and their sires’ bond to appear at the
assize, or be held in prison in the meantime. The sheriff was a tall, spare
man, erect and vigorous, with a short black beard trimmed to a point, and a
sharp and daunting eye. He took his seat without ceremony, and a sergeant
handed him the list of names of those in custody. He raised his eyebrows
ominously at the number of them.
“All these were taken in riot?” He spread the roll on his table and frowned
down at it. “Very well! There is also the graver matter of the death of Master
Thomas of Bristol. At what hour was the last word we have of Master Thomas
alive and well?”
“According to his journeyman and his watchman, he left his
booth on the horse-fair, intending to return to his barge, more than an hour
past the Compline bell. That is the last word we have. His man Roger Dod is
here to testify that the hour was rather more than a quarter past nine of the
evening and the watchman bears that out.”
“Late enough,” said the sheriff, pondering. “The fighting was over by then,
and Foregate and fairground quiet. Hugh, prick me off here all those who were then
already in custody. Whatever their guilt for damages to goods and gear, they
cannot have had any hand in this murder.”
Hugh leaned to his shoulder, and ran a rapid hand down the roster. “It was a
sharp encounter, but short. We had it in hand very quickly, they never reached
the end of the Foregate. This man was picked up last, it might be as late as
ten, but in an ale-house and very drunk, and the ale-wife vouches for his
having been there above an hour. A respectable witness, she was glad to get rid
of him. But he’s clear of the killing. This one crept back to the bridge a
little later, and owned to having been one among the rabble, but we let him
home, for he’s very lame, and there are witnesses to all his moves since before
nine. He’s here to answer for his part in the muster, as he promised. I think
you may safely write him clear of any other blame.”
“It leaves but one,” said Prestcote, and looked up sharply into Beringar’s
face.
“It does,” said Hugh, and committed himself to nothing further.
“Very well! Have in all the rest, but keep him aside. Let us hold these two
matters apart, and deal with the lesser first.”
Into the space roped off along one side the hall, the sheriff’s officers
herded their prisoners, a long file of sullenly sheepish young men, bruised,
dishevelled and sorry for themselves now, but still nursing the embers of a
genuine resentment. There were some torn coats among them, and a purple eye or
two, and the lingering signs of bloody noses and battered crowns, and a night
on the stones of indifferently swept cells had done their best clothes, donned
for dignified battle as knights case themselves in ceremonial armour, no good
at all. There would be indignant mothers scolding bitterly as they
scrubbed and mended, or here and there a young wife doing the nagging on behalf
of all women. The offenders stood in line doggedly, set their jaws, and braced
themselves to endure whatever might follow.
Prestcote was thorough. Plainly he was preoccupied with the more serious
evil, and little disposed to fulminate overmuch about this civic discord, which
in the end had done comparatively little harm. So though he called every
culprit separately, and had him answer for his own part in the affray, he got
through them rapidly and reasonably. Most of them freely owned that they had
taken part, maintained that the intention had been entirely lawful and
peaceable, and the disintegration later had been unintentional and none of
their making. Several bore witness that they had been with Philip Corviser on
the jetty, and told how he had been assaulted, thus letting loose the riot that
followed. Only one here and there sought to prove that he had never so much as
overset one trestle under a stall, nor even been on the abbey side of Severn
that evening. And those few were already committed deep on the evidence of
law-abiding citizens.
Agitated fathers, vengeful rather than doting, came forward to claim each
dejected hero, pledged attendance at the assize, and offered surety for the
pledge. The lame lad was lectured perfunctorily, and dismissed without penalty.
Two who had been particularly voluble in asserting that they were elsewhere at
the time, and unjustly accused, were returned to their prison for a day or two,
to reconsider the nature of truth.
“Very well!” said Prestcote, dusting his hands irritably. “Clear the hall,
but for those who have evidence to give concerning Master Thomas of Bristol.
And bring in Philip Corviser.”
The line of young men had vanished, hustled out and shepherded away by loyal
but exasperated families. At home they would have to sit and nurse sore heads
and sore hearts while fathers hectored and dames wept, pouring out on them all
the fear and worry they had suffered on their behalf. Emma looked after the
last of them with round, sympathetic eyes, as he was haled away by the ear by a
diminutive mother half his size, and shrill as a jay. Poor lad, he needed no
other punishment, he was drowning in mortification already.
She turned about, and there where his fellows had been, but
monstrously alone in the middle of that stony wall, was Philip Corviser.
He gripped the rope with both hands, and stood rigidly erect, neck as stiff
as a lance, though for the rest he looked as if his flesh might melt and drop
off the bone, he was so haggard. His extreme pallor, which Cadfael knew for
what raw wine can do to the beginner, the day after his indulgence, Emma almost
certainly took for the fruit of dire injury and great anguish of mind. She
paled in reflection, staring piteously, though he was nothing to her, except
that she had seen him struck down, and been afraid he might not rise again.
For all his efforts, he was a sorry figure. His best cotte was torn and
soiled, and worse, speckled with drops of blood under his left ear, and vomit
about the skirts. He mustered his gangling limbs gallantly but somewhat
uncertainly, and his harmless, sunburned face, unshaven now and ashen under its
tan, blushed to an unbecoming and unexpected purple when he caught sight of his
father, waiting with laboured patience among the onlookers. He did not look
that way again, but kept his bruised brown eyes fixed upon the sheriff.
He answered to his name in a voice too loud, from nervous defiance, and
agreed to the time and place of his arrest. Yes, he had been very drunk, and
hazy about his movements, and even about the circumstances of his arrest, but
yes, he would try to answer truthfully to what was charged against him.
There were several witnesses to testify that Philip had been the originator
and leader of the whole enterprise which had ended so ignominiously. He had
been in the forefront when the angry young men crossed the bridge, he had given
the signal that sent some of the party ahead along the Foregate, while he led a
handful down to the riverside, and entered into loud argument with the
merchants unloading goods there. Thus far all accounts tallied, but from then
on they varied widely. Some had the youths beginning at once to toss
merchandise into the river, and were certain that Philip had been in the thick
of the battle. One or two of the aggrieved merchants alleged with righteous
indignation that he had assaulted Master Thomas, and so began the whole
turmoil. Since they would all have their say, Hugh Beringar had held back his
preferred witnesses until last.
“My lord, as to the scene by the river, we have here the niece
of Master Thomas, and two men who intervened, and afterwards helped to rescue
much of what had been cast into the river: Ivo Corbière of Stanton Cobbold, and
Brother Cadfael of the abbey, who was assisting a Welsh-speaking trader. There
were no others so close to the affair. Will you hear Mistress Vernold?”
Philip had not realised until that moment that she was present. The mention
of her caused him to look round wildly, and the sight of her stepping shyly
forward to stand before the sheriff’s table brought out a deep and painful
blush, that welled out of the young man’s torn collar and mounted in a great
wave to his red-brown hair. He averted his eyes from her, wishing, thought
Cadfael, for the floor to open and swallow him up. It would not have mattered
so much looking a piteous object to others, but before her he was furious and
ashamed. Not even the thought of his father’s mortification could have sunk his
spirits so low. Emma, after one rapid glance, sympathetic enough, had also
turned her eyes away. She looked only at the sheriff, who returned her straight
gaze with concern and compunction.
“Was it needful to put Mistress Vernold to this distress, at such a time?
Madam, you could well have been spared an appearance here, the lord Corbière
and the good brother would have been witness enough.”
“I wished to come,” said Emma, her voice small but steady. “Indeed I was not
pressed, it was my own decision.”
“Very well, if that is your wish. You have heard these varying versions of
what happened. There seems little dispute until these disturbers of the peace
came down to the jetty. Let me hear from you what followed.”
“It is true that young man was the leader. I think he addressed himself to
my uncle because he seemed the most important merchant then present, but he
spoke high to be heard by all the rest. I cannot say that he uttered any
threats, he only stated that the town had a grievance, and the abbey was not
paying enough for the privilege of the fair, and asked that we, who come to do
business here, should acknowledge the rights of the town, and pay a tithe of
our rents and tolls to the town instead of all to the abbey. Naturally my uncle
would not listen, but stood firm on the letter of the charter, and ordered the
young men out of his way. And when he—the prisoner here—would
still be arguing, my uncle turned his back and shrugged him off. Then the young
man laid a hand on his arm, wanting to detain him still, and my uncle, who had
his staff in his hand, turned and struck out at him. Thinking, I suppose, that
he intended him offence or injury.”
“And did he not?” The sheriff’s voice indicated mild surprise.
She cast one brief glance at the prisoner, and one in quest of reassurance
at Brother Cadfael, and thought for a moment. “No, I think not. He was
beginning to be angry, but he had not said any ill word, or made any
threatening movement. And my uncle, of course in alarm, hit hard. It felled
him, and he lay in a daze.” This time she did turn and look earnestly at
Philip, and found him staring at her wide-eyed. “You see he is marked. His left
temple.” Dried blood had matted the thick brown hair.
“And did he then attempt retaliation?” asked Prestcote.
“How could he?” she said simply. “He was more than half stunned, he could
not rise without help. And then all the others began to fight, and to throw
things into the river. And Brother Cadfael came and helped him to his feet and
delivered him to his friends, and they took him away. I am sure he could not
have walked unaided. I think he did not know what he was doing, or how he came
to such a state.”
“Not then, perhaps,” said Prescote reasonably. “But later in the evening,
somewhat recovered, and as he has himself admitted, very drunk, he may well
have brooded on a revenge.”
“I can say nothing as to that. My uncle would have struck him again, and
might have done him desperate hurt if I had not stopped him. That is not his
nature,” she said firmly, “it was most unlike him, but he was in a rage, and
confused. Brother Cadfael will confirm what I say.”
“At all points,” said Brother Cadfael. “It is a perfectly balanced and just
account.”
“My lord Corbière?”
“I have nothing to add,” said Ivo, “to what Mistress Vernold has so admirably
told you. I saw the prisoner helped away by his fellows, and what became of him
after that I have no knowledge. But here is a man of mine, Turstan Fowler, who
says he did see him later in the evening, drinking in an
ale-house at the corner of the horse-fair. I must say,” added Ivo with resigned
disgust, “that his own recollection of the night’s events ought to be as hazy
as the prisoner’s, for we took him up dead drunk past eleven, and by the look
of him he had been in the same state some time then. I had him put into a cell
in the abbey overnight. But he claims his head is clear now, and he knows what
he saw and heard. I thought it best he should speak here for himself.”
The archer edged forward sullenly, peering up under thick frowning brows, as
though his head still rang.
“Well, what is it you claim to know, fellow?” asked Prestcote, eyeing him
narrowly.
“My lord, I had no call to be out of the precinct at all, last night, my
lord Corbière had given me orders to stay within. But I knew he would spend the
evening looking the ground over, so I ventured. I got my skinful at Wat’s
tavern, by the north corner of the horse-fair. And this fellow was there,
drinking fit to beat me, and I’m an old toper, and can carry it most times. The
place was full, there must be others can tell you the same. He was nursing his
sore head, and breathing fire against the man that gave it him. He swore he’d
be up with him before the night was out. And that’s all the meat of it, my
lord.”
“At what hour was this?” asked Prestcote.
“Well, my lord, I was still firm on my feet then, and clear in my mind, and
that I certainly was not later in the evening. It must have been somewhere
halfway between eight and nine. I should have borne my drink well enough if I
had not gone from ale to wine, and then to a fierce spirit, and that last was
what laid me low, or I’d have been back within the wall before my lord came
home, and escaped a night on the stones.”
“It was well earned,” said Prestcote dryly. “So you took yourself off to
sleep off your load—when?”
“Why, about nine, I suppose, my lord, and was fathoms deep soon after.
Troth, I can’t recall where, though I remember the inn. They can tell you where
I was found who found me.”
At this point it dawned abruptly upon Brother Cadfael that by pure chance
this whole interrogation, since Philip had been brought in, had been conducted
without once mentioning the fact that Master Thomas at this
moment lay dead in the castle chapel. Certainly the sheriff had addressed Emma
in tones of sympathy and consideration appropriate to her newly-orphaned state,
and her uncle’s absence might in itself be suggestive, though in view of the
importance of his business at the fair, and the fact that Emma had once, at
least, referred to him in the present tense, a person completely ignorant of
his death would hardly have drawn any conclusion from these hints, unless he
had all his wits about him. And Philip had been all night in a prison cell, and
haled out only to face this hearing, and moreover, was still sick and dulled
with his drinking, his broken head and his sore heart, and in no case to pick
up every inference of what he heard. No one had deliberately laid a trap for
him, but for all that, the trap was there, and it might be illuminating to
spring it.
“So these threats you heard against Master Thomas,” said Prescote, “can have
been uttered only within an hour, probably less, of the time when the merchant
left his booth to return alone to his barge. The last report we have of him.”
That was drawing nearer to the spring, but not near enough. Philip’s face
was still drawn, resigned and bewildered, as though they had been talking Welsh
over his head. Brother Cadfael struck the prop clean away; it was high time.
“The last report we have of him alive,” he said clearly.
The word might have been a knife going in, the slender kind that is hardly
felt for a moment, and then hales after it the pain and the injury. Philip’s
head came up with a jerk, his mouth fell open, his bruised eyes rounded in
horrified comprehension.
“But it must be remembered,” continued Cadfael quickly, “that we do not know
the hour at which he died. A body taken from the water may have entered it at
any time during the night, after all the prisoners were in hold, and all
honest men in bed.”
It was done. He had hoped it would settle the issue of guilt and innocence,
at least to his satisfaction, but now he still could not be quite sure the boy
had not known the truth already. How if he had only held his peace and listened
to the ambiguous voices, and been in doubt whether Master Thomas’s corpse had
yet been found? On the face of it, if he had had any hand in that death, he was
a better player than any of the travelling entertainers who
would be plying their trade among the crowds this evening. His pallor, from
underdone dough, had frozen into marble, he tried to speak and swallowed
half-formed words, he drew huge breaths into him, and straightened his back,
and turned great, shocked eyes upon the sheriff. On the face of it—but every
face can dissemble if the need is great enough.
“My lord,” pleaded Philip urgently, when he had his voice again, “is this
truth? Master Thomas of Bristol is dead?”
“Known or unknown to you,” said Prestcote dryly, “—and I hazard no
judgment—it is truth. The merchant is dead. Our main purpose here now is to
examine how he died.”
“Taken from the water, the monk said. Did he drown?”
“That, if you know, you may tell us.”
Abruptly the prisoner turned his back upon the sheriff, took another deep
breath into him, and looked directly at Emma, and from then on barely took his
eyes from her, even when Prestcote addressed him. The only judgment he cared
about was hers.
“Lady, I swear to you I never did your uncle harm, never saw him again after
they hauled me away from the jetty. What befell him I do not know, and God
knows I’m sorry for your loss. I would not for the world have touched him, even
if we had met and quarrelled afresh, knowing he was your kinsman.”
“Yet you were heard threatening harm to him,” said the sheriff.
“It may be so. I cannot drink, I was a fool ever to try that cure. I recall
nothing of what I said, I make no doubt it was folly, and unworthy. I was sore
and bitter. What I set out to do was honest enough, and yet it fell apart. All
went to waste. But if I talked violence, I did none. I never saw the man again.
When I turned sick from the wine I left the tavern and went down to the
riverside, away from the boats, and lay down there until I made shift to drag
myself back to the town. I admit to the trouble that arose out of my acts, and
all that has been said against me, all but this. As God sees me, I never did
your uncle any injury. Speak, and say you believe me!”
Emma gazed at him with parted lips and dismayed eyes, unable
to say yes or no to him. How could she know what was true and what was lies?
“Let her be,” said the sheriff sharply. “It is with us you have to deal.
This matter must be probed deeper than has been possible yet. Nothing is
proven, but you stand in very grave suspicion, and it is for me to determine
what is to be done with you.”
“My lord,” ventured the provost, who had kept his mouth tightly shut until
now, against great temptation, “I am prepared to stand surety for my son to
whatever price you may set, and I guarantee he shall be at your disposal at the
assize, and at whatever time between when you may need to question him. My
honour has never been in doubt, and my son, whatever else, has been known as a
man of his word, and if he gives his bond here he will keep it, even without my
enforcement. I beg your lordship will release him home to my bail.”
“On no terms,” said Prestcote decidedly. “The matter is too grave. He stays
under lock and key.”
“My lord, if you so order, under lock and key he shall be, but let it be in
my house. His mother—”
“No! Say no more, you must know it is impossible. He stays here in custody.”
“There is nothing against him in the matter of this death,” offered Corbière
generously, “as yet, that is, except my rogue’s witness of his threats. And thieves
do haunt such gatherings as the great fairs, and if they can cut a man out from
his fellows, will kill him for the clothes on his back. And surely the fact
that the body was stripped accords better with just such a foul chance crime
for gain? Vengeance has nothing to feed on in a bundle of clothing. The act is
all.”
“True,” agreed Prestcote. “But supposing a man had killed in anger, perhaps
simply gone too far in an assault meant only to injure, he might be wise enough
to strip his victim, to make it appear the work of common robbers, and turn
attention away from himself. There is much work to be done yet in this case,
but meantime Corviser must remain in hold. I should be failing in my duty if I
turned him loose, even to your care, master provost.” And the sheriff ordered,
with a motion of his hand: “Take him away!”
Philip was slow to move, until the butt of a lance prodded
him none too gently in the side. Even then he kept his chin on his shoulder for
some paces, and his eyes desperately fixed upon Emma’s distressed and doubting
face. “I did not touch him,” he said, plucked forcibly away towards the door
through which his guards had brought him. “I pray you, believe me!” Then he was
gone, and the hearing was over.
Out in the great court they paused to draw grateful breath, released from
the shadowy oppression of the hall. Roger Dod hovered, with hungry eyes upon
Emma.
“Mistress, shall I attend you back to the barge? Or will you have me go
straight back to the booth? I had Gregory go there to help Warin, while I had
to be absent, but trade was brisking up nicely, they’ll be hard pushed by now.
If that’s what you want? To work the fair as he’d have worked it?”
“That is what I want,” she said firmly. “To do all as he would have done.
You go straight back to the horse-fair, Roger. I shall be staying with Lady
Beringar at the abbey for this while, and Brother Cadfael will escort me.”
The journeyman louted, and left them, without a backward glance. But the
very rear view of him, sturdy, stiff and aware, brought back to mind the
intensity of his dark face and burning, embittered eyes. Emma watched him go,
and heaved a helpless sigh.
“I am sure he is a good man, I know he is a good servant, and has stood
loyally by my uncle many years. So he would by me, after his fashion. And I do
respect him, I must! I think I could like him, if only he would not want me to
love him!”
“It’s no new problem,” said Cadfael sympathetically. “The lightning strikes
where it will. One flames, and the other remains cold. Distance is the only
cure.”
“So I think,” said Emma fervently. “Brother Cadfael, I must go to the barge,
to bring away some more clothes and things I need. Will you go with me?”
He understood at once that this was an opportune time. Both Warin and
Gregory were coping with customers at the booth, and Roger was on his way to
join them. The barge would be riding innocently beside the jetty, and no man
aboard to trouble her peace. Only a monk of the abbey, who did
not trouble it at all. “Whatever you wish,” he said. “I have leave to assist
you in all your needs.”
He had rather expected that Ivo Corbière would come to join her once they
were out of the hall, but he did not. It was in Cadfael’s mind that she had
expected it, too. But perhaps the young man had decided that it was hardly
worthwhile making a threesome with the desired lady and a monastic attendant,
who clearly had his mandate, and would not consent to be dislodged. Cadfael
could sympathise with that view, and admire his discretion and patience. There
were two days of the fair left yet, and the great court of the abbey was not so
great but guests could meet a dozen times a day. By chance or by rendezvous!
Emma was very silent on the way back through the town. She had nothing to
say until they emerged from the shadow of the gate into full sunlight again,
above the glittering bow of the river. Then she said suddenly: “It was good of
Ivo to speak so reasonably for the young man.” And on the instant, as Cadfael
flashed a glance to glimpse whatever lay behind the words, she flushed almost
as deeply as the unlucky lad Philip had blushed on beholding her a witness to
his shame.
“It was very sound sense,” said Cadfael, amiably blind. “Suspicion there may
be, but proof there’s none, not yet. And you set him a pace in generosity he
could not but admire.”
The flush did not deepen, but it was already bright as a rose. On her ivory,
silken face, so young and unused, it was touching and becoming.
“Oh, no,” she said, “I only told simple truth. I could do no other.” Which
again was simple truth, for nothing in her life thus far had corrupted her
valiant purity. Cadfael had begun to feel a strong fondness for this orphan
girl who shouldered her load without timidity or complaint, and still had an
open heart for the burdens of others. “I was sorry for his father,” she said.
“So decent and respected a man, to be denied so. And he spoke of his wife… she
will be out of her wits with worry.”
They were over the bridge, they turned down the green path, trodden almost
bare at this busy, hot time, that led to the riverside and the long gardens and
orchards of the Gaye. Master Thomas’s deserted barge nestled into the green
bank at the far end of the jetty, close-moored. One or two
porters laboured along the boards with fresh stocks from the boats, shouldered
them, and tramped away up the path to replenish busy stalls. The riverside lay
sunlit, radiantly green and blue, and almost silent, but for the summer sounds
of bees drunkenly busy among the late summer flowers in the grass. Almost
deserted, but for a solitary fisherman in a small boat close under the shadow
of the bridge; a comfortable, squarely-built fisherman stripped to shirt and
hose, and bristling thornily with black curls and black bush of beard. Rhodri
ap Huw clearly trusted his servant to deal profitably with his English
customers, or else he had already sold out all the stock he had brought with
him. He looked somnolent, happy, almost eternal, trailing his bait along the
current under the archway, with an occasional flick of a wrist to correct the
drift. Though most likely the sharp eyes under the sleepy eyelids were missing
nothing that went on about him. He had the gift, it seemed, of being
everywhere, but everywhere disinterested and benevolent.
“I will be quick,” said Emma, with a foot on the side of the barge. “Last
night Constance lent me all that I needed, but I must not continue a beggar.
Will you step aboard, brother? You are welcome! I’m sorry to be so poor a
hostess.” Her lips quivered. He knew the instant when her mind returned to her
uncle, lying naked and dead in the castle, a man she had revered and relied on,
and perhaps felt to be eternal in his solidity and self-confidence. “He would
have wished me to offer you wine, the wine you refused last night.”
“For want of time only,” said Cadfael placidly, and hopped nimbly over on to
the barge’s low deck. “You go get what you need, child, I’ll wait for you.”
The space aboard was well organised, the cabin aft rode low, but the full
width of the hull, and though Emma had to stoop her neat head to enter,
stepping down to the lower level within, she and her uncle would have had room
within for sleeping. Little to spare, yet enough, where no alien or suspect
thing might come. But taut, indeed, when she was short of her natural protector,
with three other men closely present on deck outside. And one of them deeply,
hopelessly, in love. Uncles may not notice such glances as his, where their own
underlings are concerned.
She was back, springing suddenly to view in the low doorway.
Her eyes had again that look of shock and alarm, but now contained and
schooled. Her voice was level and low as she said: “Someone has been here!
Someone strange! Someone has handled everything we left here on board, pawed
through my linen and my uncle’s, too, turned every board or cover. I do not
dream, Brother Cadfael! It is true! Our boat has been ransacked while it was
left empty. Come and see!”
It was without guile that he asked her instantly: “Has anything been taken?”
Still possessed by her discovery, and unguardedly honest, Emma said: “No!”
Chapter Three
Everything in the boat, and certainly in the small cabin, seemed to Cadfael
to be in immaculate order, but he did not therefore doubt her judgment. A girl
making her third journey in this fashion, and growing accustomed to making the
best use of the cramped space, would know exactly how she had everything folded
and stowed, and the mere disturbance of a fold, the crumpling of a corner in
the neat low chest under her bench-bed would be enough to alert her, and betray
the intervention of another hand. But the very attempt at perfect restoration
was surprising. It argued that the interloper had had ample time at his
disposal, while all the crew were absent. Yet she had said confidently that
nothing had been stolen.
“You are sure? You’ve had little time to examine everything here. Best look
round thoroughly and make sure, before we report this to Hugh Beringar.”
“Must I do that?” she asked, a little startled, even, he thought, a little
dismayed. “If there’s no harm? They are burdened enough with other matters.”
“But do you not see, child, that this comes too aptly on the other? Your
uncle killed, and now his barge ransacked… ”
“Why, there can surely be no connection,” she said quickly. “This is the work
of some common thief.”
“A common thief who took nothing?” said Cadfael. “Where there are any number
of things worth the taking!”
“Perhaps he was interrupted… ” But her voice wavered into silence, she could
not even convince herself.
“Does it look so to you? I think he must have been through
all your belongings at leisure, to leave them so neat for you. And removed
himself only when he was satisfied.” But of what? That what he wanted was not
there?
Emma gnawed a dubious lip, and looked about her thoughtfully. “Well, if we
must report it… You’re right, I spoke too soon, perhaps I should go through
everything. No use telling him but half a tale.”
She settled down methodically to take out every item of clothing and
equipment from both chests, laying them out on the beds, even unfolding those
which showed, to her eyes at least, the most obvious signs of handling, and
refolding them to her own satisfaction. At the end of it she sat back on her
heels and looked up at Cadfael, thoughtfully frowning.
“Yes, there have been some things taken, but so cunningly. Small things that
would never have been missed until we got home. There’s a girdle of mine
missing, one with a gold clasp. And a silver chain. And a pair of gloves with
gold embroidery. If my thumbs had not pricked when I came in here, I should not
have missed them, for I shouldn’t have wanted to wear any of them. What could I
want with gloves in August? I bought them all in Gloucester, on the way up the
river.”
“And of your uncle’s belongings?”
“I think there is nothing missing. If some moneys were left here, certainly
none are here now, but his strong-box is at the booth. He never carried
valuables on such journeys as this, except the rings he always wore. I should
not have had such rich trifles here myself, if I had not but newly bought
them.”
“So it seems,” said Cadfael, “whoever took the opportunity of stepping
aboard boldly, to see what he could pick up, had the wit to take only trifles
he could slip in his sleeve or his pouch. That makes good sense. However
naturally it was done, he’d be likely to cause some curiosity if he stepped
ashore with his arms full of your uncle’s gowns and shirts.”
“And we must trouble Hugh Beringar and the sheriff over so trivial a loss?”
wondered Emma, jutting a doubtful lip. “It seems a pity, when he has so many
graver matters on his mind. And you see this is only an ordinary, vulgar
filching, because the boat was left empty a while. Small creatures of prey have
an eye to such chances.”
“Yes, we must,” said Cadfael firmly. “Let the law be the
judge whether this has anything to do with your uncle’s death or no. That’s not
for us to say. You find what you need to take with you, and we’ll go together
and see him, if he’s to be found at this hour.”
Emma put together a fresh gown and tunic, stockings and shift and other such
mysteries as girls need, with a composure which Cadfael found at once admirable
and baffling. The immediate discovery of the invasion of her possessions had
startled and disturbed her, but she had come to terms with it very quickly and
calmly, and appeared perfectly indifferent to the loss of her finery. He was
just considering how odd it was that she should be so anxious to disconnect
this incident from her uncle’s death, when she herself, in perverse and unthinking
innocence, restored the link.
“Well, at any rate,” said Emma, gathering her bundle together neatly in the
skirt of the gown, and rising nimbly from her knees, “no one can dare say that
the provost’s son was to blame for this. He’s safe in a cell in the castle, and
the sheriff himself can be his witness this time.”
Hugh Beringar had shrugged off his duties to enjoy at least the evening meal
with his wife. Mercifully the first day of the fair had passed so far without
further incident, no disorders, no quarrels, no accusations of cheating or
overcharging, no throat-cutting or price-cutting, as though the uproar of the
previous evening, and its deadly result, had chastened and subdued even the
regular offenders. Trade was thriving, rents and tolls bringing in a high
revenue for the abbey, and sales seemed set to continue peacefully well into
the night.
“And I have bought some spun wool,” said Aline, delighted with her day’s
shopping, “and some very fine woollen cloth, so soft—feel it! And Constance
chose two beautiful fleeces from Cadfael’s Welsh merchant, she wants to card
and spin them herself for the baby. And I changed my mind about a cradle, for I
saw nothing in the fair to match what Martin Bellecote can do. I shall go to
him.”
“The girl is not back yet?” said Hugh, mildly surprised. “She left the
castle well before me.”
“She’ll have gone to bring some things from the barge. She had nothing with
her last night, you know. And she was going to Bellecote’s shop,
too, to bespeak the coffin for her uncle.”
“That she’d done on the way,” said Hugh, “for Martin came to the castle
about the business before I left. They’ll be bringing the body down to the
chapel here before dark.” He added appreciatively: “A fair-minded lass, our
Emma, as well as a stout-hearted one. She would not have that fool boy of
Corviser’s turned into the attacker, even for her uncle’s sake. A straight tale
as ever was. He opened civilly, was brusquely received, made the mistake of
laying hand on the old man, and was felled like a poled ox.”
“And what does he himself say?” Aline looked up intently from the bolt of
soft stuff she was lovingly stroking.
“That he never laid eyes on Master Thomas again, and knows no more about his
death than you or I. But there’s that falconer of Corbière’s says he was
breathing fire and smoke against the old man in Wat’s tavern well into the
evening. Who knows! The mildest lamb of the flock—but that’s not his
reputation!—may be driven to clash foreheads when roused, but the knife in the
back, somehow—that I doubt. He had no knife on him when he was taken up at the
gate. We shall have to ask all his companions if they saw such a thing about
him.”
“Here is Emma,” said Aline, looking beyond him to the doorway.
The girl came in briskly with her bundle, Brother Cadfael at her shoulder.
“I’m sorry to have been so long,” said Emma, “but we had reason. Something
untoward has happened—oh, it is not so grave, no great harm, but Brother
Cadfael says we must tell you.”
Cadfael forbore from urging, stood back in silence, and let her tell it in
her own way, and a very flat way it was, as though she had no great interest in
her reported loss. But for all that, she described the bits of finery word for
word as she had described them to him, and went into greater detail of their ornaments.
“I did not wish to bother you with such trumpery thefts. How can I care about a
lost girdle and gloves, when I have lost so much more? But Brother Cadfael
insisted, so I have told you.”
“Brother Cadfael was right,” said Hugh sharply. “Would it surprise you,
child, to know that we have had not one complaint of mispractice
or stealing or any evil all this day, touching any other tradesman at the fair?
Yet one threat follows another where your uncle’s business is concerned. Can
that truly be by chance? Is there not someone here who has no interest in any
other, but all too much in him?”
“I knew you would think so,” she said, sighing helplessly. “But it was only
by chance that our barge was left quite unmanned all this afternoon, by reason
of Roger being needed with the rest of us at the castle. I doubt if there was
another boat there unwatched. And common thieves have a sharp eye out for such
details. They take what they can get.”
It was a shrewd point, and clearly she was not the girl to lose sight of any
argument that could serve her turn. Cadfael held his peace. There would be a
time to discuss the matter with Hugh Beringar, but it was not now. The
questions that needed answers would not be asked of Emma; where would be the
use? She had been born with all her wits about her, and through force of
circumstances she was learning with every moment. But why was she so anxious to
have this search of her possessions shrugged aside as trivial, and having no
bearing on Master Thomas’s murder? And why had she stated boldly, in the first
shook of discovery, indeed without time to view the field in any detail, that
nothing had been taken? As though, disdaining the invasion, she had good reason
to know that it had been ineffective?
And yet, thought Cadfael, studying the rounded resolute face, and the clear
eyes she raised to Hugh’s searching stare, I would swear this is a good, honest
girl, no way cheat or liar.
“You’ll not be needing me,” he said, “Emma can tell you all. It’s almost time
for Vespers, and I have still to go and speak with the abbot. There’ll be time
later, Hugh, after supper.” Abbot Radulfus was a good listener. Not once did he
interrupt with comment or question, as Brother Cadfael recounted for him all
that had passed at the sheriff’s hearing and the unexpected discovery at the
barge afterwards. At the end of it he sat for a brief while in silence still,
pondering what he had heard.
“So we now have one unlawful act of which the man charged cannot possibly be
guilty, whatever may be the truth concerning the other. What do you think, does
this tend to weaken the suspicion against him, even on the
charge of murder?”
“It weakens it,” said Cadfael, “but it cannot clear him. It may well be
true, as Mistress Vernold believes, that the two things are no way linked, the
filching from the barge a mere snatch at what was available, for want of a
watchman to guard it. Yet two such assaults upon the same man’s life and goods
looks like methodical purpose, and not mere chance.”
“And the girl is now a guest within our halls,” said Radulfus, “and her
safety our responsibility. Two attacks upon one man’s life and goods, you said.
How if there should be more? If a subtle enemy is pursuing some private
purpose, it may not end with this afternoon’s violation, as we have seen it did
not end with the merchant’s death. The girl is in the care of the deputy
sheriff, and could not be in better hands. But like them, she is a guest under
our roof. I do not want the brothers of our community distracted from their
devotions and duties, or the harmony of our services shaken, I would not have
these matters spoken of but between you and me, and of course as is needful to
aid the law. But you, Brother Cadfael, have already been drawn in, you know the
whole state of the case. Will you have an eye to what follows, and keep watch
on our guests? I place the interests of the abbey in your hands. Do not neglect
your devotional duties, unless you must, but I give you leave to go in and out
freely, and absent yourself from offices if there is need. When the fair ends,
our halls will empty, our tenant merchants depart. It will be out of our hands
then to protect the just or prevent the harm that threatens from the unjust.
But while they are here, let us do what we can.”
“I will undertake what you wish, Father Abbot,” said Cadfael, “to the best I
may.”
He went to Vespers with a burdened heart and a vexed mind, but for all that,
he was glad of the Abbot’s charge. It was, in any case, impossible to give up
worrying at so tangled a knot, once it had presented itself to his notice, even
apart from the natural concern he felt for the girl, and there was no denying
that the Benedictine round, dutifully observed, did limit a man’s mobility for
a large part of the day.
Meantime, he drove the affairs of Emma Vernold from his thoughts with a
struggle that should have earned him credit in heaven, and
surrendered himself as best he could to the proper observance of Vespers. And
after supper he repaired to the cloister, and was not surprised to find Hugh
Beringar there waiting for him. They sat down together in a corner where the
evening breeze coiled about them very softly and gratefully, and the view into
the garth was all emerald turf and pale grey stone, and azure sky melting into
green, through a fretwork of briars blowsy with late, drunken-sweet roses.
“There’s news in your face,” said Cadfael, eyeing his friend warily. “As
though we have not had enough for one day!”
“And what will you make of it?” wondered Hugh. “Not an hour ago a lad
fishing in Severn hooked a weight of sodden cloth out of the water. All but
broke his line, so he let it back in, but was curious enough to play it to
shore until he could take it up safely. A fine, full woollen gown, made for a
big man, and one with money to spend, too.” He met Cadfael’s bright, alerted
eyes, rather matching certainties than questioning. “Yes, what else? We did not
trouble Emma with it—who would have the heart! She’s drawing Aline a pattern
for an embroidered hem for an infant’s robe, one she got from France. They have
their heads together like sisters. No, we fetched Roger Dod to swear to it.
It’s Master Thomas’s gown, no question. We’re poling down the banks now after
hose and shirt. To any wandering thief that gown was worth a month’s hunting.”
“So no such leech would have thrown it away,” said Cadfael.
“Never!”
“There were also rings taken from his fingers. But rings, I suppose, might
be too good to discard, even to prove that this was a murder for hate, not for
gain. Rings would sink even if hurled into the Severn. So why hurl them?”
“As usual,” said Hugh, elevating thin black brows, “you’re ahead of me
rather than abreast. On the face of it, this was a killing for private malice.
So while we examine it, Ivo Corbière very sensibly points out that a murderer
so minded would not have stayed to strip the body and put it into the river,
but left it lying, and made off as fast as he could. Vengeance, he says
rightly, has nothing to feed on in a bundle of clothing. The act is all! And
that moved my sheriff to remark that the same thought might well
have occurred to the murderer, and caused him to strip his victim naked for
that very reason, a hoodwink for the law. Now we drag out of the river the dead
man’s gown. And where does that leave you and me, my friend?”
“In two minds, or more,” said Cadfael ruefully. “If the gown never had been
found, the notion of common robbery would have held its ground and told in
young Corviser’s favour. Is it possible that what was said in the sheriff’s court
put that thought into someone’s mind for the first time, and drove him to
discard the gown where it was likely to be found? There’s one person it would
suit very well to have the case against your prisoner strengthened, and that’s
the murderer himself. Supposing yon fool boy is not the murderer, naturally.”
“True, half a case can come to look almost whole by the addition of one more
witness. But what a fool your man would be, to toss the gown away for proof the
killing was not for robbery, thus turning suspicion back upon Philip Corviser,
and then creep aboard the barge and steal, when Philip Corviser is in a cell in
the castle, and manifestly out of the reckoning.”
“Ah, but he never supposed the theft would be discovered until the barge was
back in Bristol, or well on the way. I tell you, Hugh, I could see no
trace of an alien hand anywhere among those stores on deck or the chattels in
the cabin, and Emma herself said she would not have missed the lost things
until reaching home again. They were bought on this journey, she had no
intention of wearing them. Nothing obvious was stolen, she had almost reached
the bottom of her chest before she found out these few bits of finery were
gone. But for her sharp eye for her own neat housekeeping, she would not have
known the boat had been visited.”
“Yet robbery points to two separate villains and two separate crimes,”
pointed out Hugh with a wry smile, “as Emma insists on believing. If hate was
the force behind the man’s death, why stoop to pilfer from him afterwards? But
do you believe the two things are utterly separate? I think not!”
“Strange chances do jostle one another sometimes in this world. Don’t put it
clean out of mind, it may still be true. But I cannot choose but believe that
it’s the same hand behind both happenings, and the same purpose,
and it was neither theft nor hatred, or the death would have ended it.”
“But Cadfael, in heaven’s name, what purpose that demanded a man’s death
could get satisfaction afterwards from stealing a pair of gloves, a girdle and
a chain?”
Brother Cadfael shook his head helplessly, and had no answer to that, or
none that he was yet prepared to give.
“My head spins, Hugh. But I have a black suspicion it may not be over yet.
Abbot Radulfus has given me his commission to have an eye to the matter, for
the abbey’s sake, and permission to go in and out as I see fit for the purpose.
It’s at the back of his mind that if there’s some malignant plot in hand
against the Bristol merchant, his niece may not be altogether safe, either. If
Aline can keep her at her side, so much the better. But I’ll be keeping a
watchful eye on her, too.” He rose, yawning. “Now I must be off to Compline. If
I’m to scamp my duties tomorrow, let me at least end today well.”
“Pray for a quiet night,” said Hugh, rising with him, “for we’ve not the men
to mount patrols through the dark hours. I’ll take one more turn along the
Foregate with my sergeant, as far as the horse-fair, and then I’m for my bed. I
saw little enough of it last night!”
The night of the first of August, the opening day of Saint Peter’s Fair, was
warm, clear, and quiet enough. Traders along the Foregate kept their stalls
open well into the dark hours, the weather being so inviting that plenty of
customers were still abroad to chaffer and bargain. The sheriff’s officers
withdrew into the town, and even the abbey servants, left to keep the peace if
it were threatened, had little work to do. It was past midnight when the last lamps and torches were quenched, and the night’s silence descended upon the
horse-fair.
Master Thomas’s barge rocked very softly to the motion of the river. Master
Thomas himself lay in a chapel of the abbey, decently shrouded, and in his
workshop in the town Martin Bellecote the master-carpenter worked late upon the
fine, lead-lined coffin Emma had ordered from him. And in a narrow and dusty
cell in the castle, Philip Corviser tossed and turned and nursed his bruises on
a thin mattress of straw, and could not sleep for fretting over the memory of
Emma’s doubting, pitying face.
The Second Day of the Fair
Chapter One
The second day of the fair dawned brilliantly, a golden sun climbing, faint
mist hanging like a floating veil over the river. Roger Dod rose with the dawn,
shook Gregory awake, rolled up his brychan, washed in the river, and made a
quick meal of bread and small ale before setting off along the Foregate to his
master’s booth. All along the highroad traders were clambering out of their
cloaks, yawning and stretching, and setting out their goods ready for the day’s
business. Roger exchanged greetings with several of them as he passed. Where so
many were gathered at close quarters, even a dour and silent man could not help
picking up acquaintance with a few of his fellows.
The first glimpse of Master Thomas’s booth, between the busy stirrings of
its neighbours, brought a scowl to Roger’s brow and a muttered oath to his
tongue, for the wooden walls were still fast closed. Every hatch still sealed,
and the sun already climbing! Warin must be fast asleep, inside there. Roger
hammered on the front boards, which should by this hour have been lowered
trimly on to their trestles, and set out with goods for sale. He got no
response from within.
“Warin!” he bellowed. “Devil take you, get up and let me in!”
No reply, except that several of the neighbours had turned curiously to
listen and watch, abandoning their own activities to attend to this unexpected
clamour.
“Warin!” bawled Roger, and thumped again vigorously. “You idle swine, what’s
come to you?”
“I did wonder,” said the cloth-merchant next door, pausing
with a bolt of flannel in his arms. “There’s been no sign of him. A sound
sleeper, your watchman!”
“Hold hard!” The armourer from the other side leaned excitedly over Roger’s
shoulder, and fingered the edge of the wooden door. “Splinters, see?” Beside
the latch the boards showed a few pale threads, hardly enough to be seen, and
at the thrust of his hand the door gave upon a sliver of darkness. “No need to
hammer, the way in is open. A knife has been used on this!” said the armourer,
and there fell a momentary silence.
“Pray God that’s all it’s been used on!” said Roger in an appalled whisper,
and thrust the door wide. He had a dozen of them at his back by then; even the
Welshman Rhodri ap Huw had come rolling massively between the stalls to join
them, sharp black eyes twinkling out of the thicket of his hair and beard,
though what he made of the affair, seeing he spoke no English, no one stopped
to consider.
From the darkness within welled the warm scent of timber, wine and
sweetmeats, and a faint, strange sound like the breathy grunting of a dumb man.
Roger was propelled forward into the dimness by the eager helpers crowding at
his back, all agape with curiosity. The stacked bales and small casks of wine
took shape gradually, after the brief blindness of entering this dark place
from sunlight. Everything stood orderly and handy, just as it had been left
overnight, and of Warin there was no sign, until Rhodri ap Huw, ever practical,
unbolted the front hatch and let it down, and the brightness of the morning
came flooding in.
Stretched along the foot of the same front wall, where Rhodri must almost
have set foot on him, Warin lay rolled in his own cloak and tied at elbows,
knees and ankles with cords, so tightly that he could barely wriggle enough to
make the folds of cloth rustle. There was a sack drawn over his head, and a
length of linen dragged the coarse fibres into his mouth and was secured behind
his neck. He was doing his best to answer to his name, and at least his limited
jerkings and muted grunts made it plain that he was alive.
Roger uttered a wordless yell of alarm and indignation, and fell on his
knees, plucking first at the linen band that held the sack fast. The coarse
cloth was wet before with spittle, and the mouth within must be
clogged and stung with ropey fibres, but at least the poor wretch could
breathe, his strangled grunts were trying to form words long before the linen
parted, and let him spit out his gag. Still beneath his sack, his hoarse croak
demanded aggrievedly: “Where were you so long, and me half-killed?”
A couple of pairs of willing hands were at work on the other bonds by that
time, all the more zealously now they had heard him speak, and indeed complain,
in such reassuringly robust tones. Warin emerged gradually from his swaddlings,
unrolled unceremoniously out of the cloak so that he ended face-down on the
ground, and still incoherently voluble. He righted himself indignantly, but so
spryly that it was plain he had no broken bones, no painful injuries, and had
not even suffered overmuch from the cramps of his bonds. He looked up from
under his wild grey thatch of hair, half defensive and half accusing, glaring
round the circle of his rescuers as though they had been responsible for his
hours of discomfort.
“Late’s better than never!” he said sourly, and hawked, and spat out fibres
of sacking. “What took you so long? Is everybody deaf? I’ve been kicking here
half the night!”
Half a dozen hands reached pleasurably to hoist him to his feet and sit him
down gently on a cask of wine. Roger stood off and let them indulge their
curiosity, scowling blackly at his colleague meantime. There was no damage
done, not a scratch on the old fool! The first threat, and he had crumpled into
a pliable rag.
“For God’s sake, what happened to you? You had the booth sealed. How could
any man break in here, and you not know? There are other merchants sleep here
with their wares, you had only to call.”
“Not all,” said the cloth-merchant fairly. “I myself lie at a tavern, so do
many. If your man was sound asleep, as he well might be with all closed for the
night… ”
“It was long past midnight,” said Warin, scrubbing aggrievedly at his chafed
ankles. “I know because I heard the little bell for Matins, over the wall,
before I slept. Not a sound after, until I awoke as that hood came over my
head. They rammed the stuff into my mouth. I never saw face or form, they
rolled me up like a bale of wool, and left me tied.”
“And you never raised a cry!” said Roger bitterly. “How many
were they? One or more?”
Warin was disconcerted, and wavered, swaying either way. “I think two. I’m
not sure… ”
“You were hooded, but you could hear. Did they talk together?”
“Yes, now I recall there was some whispering. Not that I could catch any
words. Yes, they were two. There was moving about of casks and bales here, that
I know… ”
“For how long? They durst not hurry, and have things fall and rouse the
fairground,” said the armourer reasonably. “How long did they stay?”
Warin was vague, and indeed to a man blindfolded and tied by night, time
might stretch out like unravelled thread. “An hour, it might be.”
“Time enough to find whatever was of most value here,” said the armourer,
and looked at Roger Dod, with a shrug of broad shoulders. “You’d better look
about you, lad, and see what’s missing. No need to trouble for anything so
weighty as casks of wine, they’d have needed a cart for those, and a cart in
the small hours would surely have roused someone. The small and precious is
what they came for.”
But Roger had already turned his back on his rescued fellow, and was
burrowing frantically among the bales and boxes stacked along the wall. “My
master’s strong-box! I built it in behind here, out of sight… Thank God I took
the most of yesterday’s gains back to the barge with me last night, and have
them safe under lock and key, but for all that, there was a good sum left in
it. And all his accounts, and parchments… ”
He was thrusting boxes and bags of spices aside in his haste, scenting the
air, pushing out of his way wooden caskets of sugar confections from the east,
come by way of Venice and Gascony, and worth high prices in any market. “Here,
against the wall… ”
His hands sank helplessly, he stood staring in dismay. He had bared the
boards of the booth; goods stood piled on either side, and between them,
nothing. Master Thomas’s strongbox was gone.
Brother Cadfael had taken advantage of the early hours to put
in an hour or two of work with Brother Mark in the herb-gardens, while he had
no reason to anticipate any threat to Emma, for she was surely still asleep in
the guest-hall with Constance, and out of reach of harm. The morning was clear
and sunny, the mist just lifting from the river, shot through with oblique
gold, and Mark sang cheerfully about his weeding, and listened attentively and
serenely as Cadfael instructed him in all particulars of the day’s work.
“For I may have to leave all things in your hands. And so I can, safely enough,
I know, if I should chance to be called away.”
“I’m well taught,” said Brother Mark, with his grave smile, behind which the
small spark of mischief was visible only to Cadfael, who had first discovered
and nurtured it. “I know what to stir and what to let well alone in the
workshop.”
“I wish I could be as sure of my part outside it,” said Cadfael ruefully.
“There are brews among us that need just as sure a touch, boy, and where to
stir and where to let be is puzzling me more than a little. I’m walking a
knife-edge, with disastrous falls on either side. I know my herbs. They have
fixed properties, and follow sacred rules. Human creatures do not so. And I
cannot even wish they did. I would not have one scruple of their complexity
done away, it would be lamentable loss.”
It was time to go to Prime. Brother Mark stooped to rinse his hands in the
butt of water they kept warming through the day, to be tempered for the herbs
at the evening watering. “It was being with you made me know that I want to be
a priest,” he said, speaking his mind as openly as always in Cadfael’s company.
“I had never the urge for it,” said Cadfael absently, his mind on other
matters.
“I know. That was the one thing wanting. Shall we go?”
They were coming out from Prime, and the lay servants already mustering for
their early Mass, when Roger Dod came trudging in at the gatehouse, out of
breath, and with trouble plain to be read in his face.
“What, again something new?” sighed Cadfael, and set off to
intercept him before he reached the guest-hall. Suddenly aware of this square,
sturdy figure bearing down on him with obvious purpose, Roger checked, and
turned an anxious face. His frown cleared a little when he recognised the same
monk who had accompanied the deputy sheriff in the vain search for Master
Thomas, on the eve of Saint Peter. “Oh, it’s you, brother, that’s well! Is Hugh
Beringar within? I must speak to him. We’re beset! Yesterday the barge, and now
the booth, and God knows what’s yet to come, and what will become of us before
ever we get away from this deadly place. My master’s books gone—money and box
and all! What will Mistress Emma think? I’d rather have had my own head broke,
if need be, than fail her so!”
“What’s this talk of broken heads?” asked Cadfael, alarmed. “Whose? Are you
telling me there’ve been thieves ransacking your booth now?”
“In the night! And the strong-box gone, and Warin tied up hand and foot with
a throatful of sacking, and nobody heard sound while they did it. We found him
not half an hour ago… ”
“Come!” said Cadfael, grasping him by the sleeve and setting off for the
guest-hall at a furious pace. “We’ll find Hugh Beringar. Tell your tale once,
and save breath!”
In Aline’s apartments the women were only just out of bed, and Hugh was
sitting over an early meal in shirt and hose, shoeless, when Cadfael rapped at
the door, and cautiously put his head in.
“Your pardon, Hugh, but there’s news. May we come in?”
Hugh took one look at him, recognised the end of his ease, and bade them in
resignedly.
“Here’s one has a tale to tell,” said Cadfael. “He’s new come from the
horse-fair.”
At sight of Roger, Emma came to her feet in astonishment and alarm, the
soft, bemused bloom of sleep gone from her eyes, and the morning flush from her
cheeks. Her black hair, not yet braided, swung in a glossy curtain about her
shoulders, and her loose undergown was ungirdled, her feet bare. “Roger, what
is it? What has happened now?”
“More theft and roguery, mistress, and God knows I can see no reason why all
the rascals in the shire should pick on us for prey.” Roger
heaved in deep breath, and launched headlong into his complaint. “This morning
I go to the stall as usual, and find it all closed, and not a sound or a word
from within for all my shouting and knocking, and then come some of the
neighbours, wondering, and one sees that the inside bar has been hoisted with a
knife—and a marvellous thin knife it must have been. And we go in and find
Warin rolled up like baggage in his own cloak, and fast tied, and his mouth
stuffed with sacking—a bag over his head, fit to choke him… ”
“Oh, no!” breathed Emma in a horrified whisper, and pressed a fist hard
against trembling lips. “Oh, poor Warin! He’s not… oh, not dead… ?”
Roger gave vent to a snort of contempt. “Not he! alive and fit as a flea,
barring being stiff from the cords. How he could sleep so sound as not to hear
the fumbling with the latch, nor even notice when the door was opened, there’s
no guessing. But if he did hear, he took good care not to give the robbers any
trouble. You know Warin’s no hero. He says he was only shook awake when the
sack went over his head, and never saw face nor form, though he thinks there
were two of them, for there was some whispering. But as like as not he heard
them come, but chose not to, for fear they’d slip the knife in his ribs.”
Emma’s colour had warmed into rose again. She drew a deep breath of
thankfulness. “But he’s safe? He’s taken no harm at all?” She caught Aline’s
sympathetic eye, and laughed shakily with relief. “I know he is not
brave. I’m glad he is not! Nor very clever nor very industrious, either,
but I’ve known him since I was a little girl, he used to make toys for me, and
willow whistles. Thank God he is not harmed!”
“Not a graze! I wish,” said Roger, his eyes burning jealously upon her
childish morning beauty, not yet adorned and needing no adornment, “I wish to
God I’d stayed there to be watchman myself, they’d not have broken in there
unscathed, and found everything handed over on a platter.”
“But then you might have been killed, Roger. I’m glad you were not
there, you’d surely have put up a fight and come to harm. What, against two,
and you unarmed? Oh, no, I want no man hurt to protect my possessions.”
“What followed?” asked Hugh shortly, stamping his feet into
his shoes and reaching for his coat. “You’ve left him there to mind the stall?
Is he fit?”
“As you or me, my lord. I’ll send him to you to tell his own tale when I get
back.”
“No need, I’m coming with you to view the place and the damage. Finish your
tale. They’ll scarcely have left empty-handed. What’s gone with them?”
Roger turned devoted, humble, apologetic eyes upon Emma. “Sorrow the day,
mistress, my master’s strong-box is gone with them!”
Brother Cadfael was watching Emma’s face just as intently as was her
hopeless admirer, and it seemed to him that in the pleasure of knowing that her
old servant had survived unharmed, she was proof against all other blows. The
loss of the strong-box she received with unshaken serenity. In these
surroundings, safe from any too pressing manifestation of his passion, she was
even moved to comfort Roger. A kind-hearted girl, who did not like to see any
of her own people out of sorts with his competence and his self-respect.
“You must not feel it so sharply,” she said warmly. “How could you have
prevented? There is no fault attaches to you.”
“I took most of the money back to the barge with me last night,” pleaded
Roger earnestly. “It’s safe locked away, there’s been no more tampering there.
But Master Thomas’s account books, and some parchments of value, and charters…
”
“Then there will be copies,” said Emma firmly. “And what is more, if they
took the box, supposing it to be full of money, they’ll keep what money was
left there, and most likely discard the box and the parchments, for what use
can they make of those? We may get most of it back, you will see.”
Not merely a kind girl, but a girl of sense and fortitude, who bore up nobly
under her losses. Cadfael looked at Hugh, and found Hugh looking at him, just
as woodenly, but with one lively eyebrow signalling slightly skeptical
admiration.
“Nothing is lost,” said Emma firmly, “of any value to compare with a life.
Since Warin is safe, I cannot be sad.”
“Nevertheless,” said Hugh with deliberation, “it might be well if one abbey
sergeant stood guard on your booth until the fair is over. For it does seem
that all the misfortunes that should be rights be shared among
all the abbey’s clients are falling solely upon you. Shall I ask Prior Robert
to see to it?”
She looked down, wary and thoughtful, for a moment, and then lifted deep
blue eyes wide and clear as the sky, and a degree more innocent than if they
had but newly opened on the world. “It’s kind of you,” she said, “but surely
everything has now been done to us. I don’t think it will be necessary to set a
guard upon us now.”
Hugh came to Cadfael’s workshop after the midday meal, leaving Emma in
Aline’s charge, helped himself to a horn of wine from Cadfael’s private store,
and settled down on the bench under the eaves, on the shady side. The fragrance
of the herbs lay like a sleepy load on the air within the pleached hedges, and
set him yawning against his will and his mood, which was for serious
discussion. They were well away from the outer world here, the busy hum of the
marketplace drifted to them only distantly and pleasantly, like the working
music of Brother Bernard’s bees. And Brother Mark, weeding the herb-beds with
delicate, loving hands, habit kilted to his knees, was no hindrance at all to
their solitude.
“A separate creature,” said Brother Cadfael, eyeing him with detached
affection “My priest, my proxy. I had to find some way of evading the fate that
closed on me. There goes my sacrificial lamb, the best of the flock.”
“Some day he will take your confession,” said Hugh, watching Mark
pluck out weeds as gently as though he pitied them, “and you’ll be a lost man,
for he’ll know every evasion.” He sipped wine, drew it about his mouth
thoughtfully, swallowed it and sat savouring the after-taste for a moment.
“This fellow Warin had little to add,” he said then. “What do you say now? This
cannot be chance.”
“No,” agreed Cadfael, propping the door of his workshop wide to let in the
air, and coming to sit beside his friend, “it cannot be chance. The man is
killed, stripped, his barge searched, his booth searched. Not a soul besides,
at this fair where there are several as wealthy, has suffered any attack or any
loss. No, there is nothing done at hazard here.”
“What, then? Expound! The girl claimed there were things stolen from the
barge. Now something positive, a strong-box, the single portable thing in the
booth that might confidently be supposed to hold valuables, is
demonstrably stolen from this last assault. If these are not simple thefts,
what are they? Tell me!”
“Stages in a quest,” said Cadfael. “It seems to me there’s a hunt afoot for
something. I do not know what, but some quite single, small thing, and
precious, which was, or was thought to be, in the possession of Master Thomas.
On the night he came here he was murdered, and his body stripped. The first
search. And it was fruitless, for the next day his barge was visited and
ransacked. The second search.”
“Not altogether fruitless this time,” said Beringar dryly, “for we know on
the best authority, do we not, that whoever paid that visit left the richer by
three things, a silver chain, a girdle with a gold clasp, and a pair of
embroidered gloves.”
“Hmmm!” Cadfael twitched his brown nose doubtfully between finger and thumb,
and eyed the young man sidewise.
“Oh, come!” said Hugh indulgently, and flashed his sudden smile. “I may not
stumble on these subtleties as quickly as you, but since knowing you I’ve had
to keep my wits about me. The lady has a bold mind and an excellent memory, and
I have no hope in the world of getting her to make a mistake in one detail of
the embroidery on those lost gloves, but for all that, I doubt if they ever
existed.”
“You might,” Cadfael suggested, though without much hope, “try asking her
outright what it is she’s hiding.”
“I did!” owned Hugh, ruefully grinning. “She opened great, hurt eyes at me,
and could not understand me! She knows nothing, she’s hiding nothing, she has
nothing to tell more than she’s already told, and every word of that is truth.
But for all that, and however angelically, the girl’s lying. What was it stuck
in your craw, and brought you up against the same shock before ever it dawned
upon me?”
“I should be sorry,” said Cadfael slowly, “if anything I have done or said
made you think any evil of the girl, for I think none.”
“Neither do I, you need not fear it. But I do think she may be meddling in
something she would do better to let well alone, and I would rather, as you
would, as Abbot Radulfus would, that no harm should come to her under our care.
Or ever, for that matter. I like her well.”
“When we went together to the barge,” said Cadfael,” and she
took no more than a minute within to cry out that someone had been there,
pawing through all their belongings, I never doubted she was telling truth.
Women know how they leave things, it needs only a wrong fold to betray an alien
hand, and certainly it shocked and startled her, that was no feigning. Nor was
it the next moment, when I asked if anything had been taken, and without pause
for thought, she said: ‘No!’ An absolute no, I would say even triumphant. I
thought little of it, then, but urged her to look thoroughly and make sure.
When I said she must report the matter, she thought again, and took pains to
discover that indeed a few things had been stolen. I think she regretted that
ever she had cried out in the first place, but if the law must know of it, she
would ensure that it was accepted as a trivial theft by some common pick-purse.
Truth is what she told unguardedly, with that scornful ‘no’ of hers. Afterwards
she made to undo the effect by lying, and for one not by nature a liar she did
it well. But for all that, I think, like you, those pretty things of hers never
existed, or never were aboard the barge.”
“Still remains the question,” said Hugh, considering, “of why she was so
sure in the first place that nothing had been taken.”
“Because,” said Cadfael simply, “she knew what the thief must have come
looking for, and she knew he had not found it, because she knew it was not
there to be found. The second search was also vain. Whatever it may be, it was
not on Master Thomas’s person, which was clearly the most likely place, nor was
it on his barge.”
“Hence this third search! So now divine for me, Cadfael, whether this third
attempt has succeeded or no. The merchant’s strong-box is vanished—again a
logical place to keep something so precious. Will this be the end of it?”
Cadfael shook his head emphatically. “This attempt has fared no better than the
others,” he said positively. “You may take that as certain.”
“How can you be so sure of it?” demanded Hugh curiously.
“You saw all that I saw. She does not care a farthing for the loss of the
strong-box! As soon as she knew that the man Warm was unhurt, she took
everything else calmly enough. Whatever it is the unknown is seeking, she knew
it was not in the barge, and she knew it was not in the booth.
And I can think of only one reason why she should know so well where it is not,
and that is that she knows equally well where it is.”
“Then the next possibility the enemy will be considering,” said Hugh with
conviction, “is where she is—on her person or in some hiding-place only
she knows of. Well, we’ll keep a vigilant eye on Emma, between us. No,” said
Hugh reflectively, “I cannot imagine any evil of her, but neither can I imagine
how she can be tangled in something grim enough to bring about murder, violence
and theft, nor why, if she knows herself to be in danger and in need of help,
she won’t speak out and ask for it. Aline has tried her best to get her to
confide, and the girl remains all sweetness and gratitude, but lets no word
drop of any burden she may be carrying. And you know Aline, she draws out
confidences without ever asking a probing question, and whoever can resist her
is beyond the reach of the rest of us… ”
“I’m glad to see you so fond a husband,” said Cadfael approvingly.
“So you should be, it was you tossed the girl into my arms in the first
place. You’d best be worrying now about what manner of father I shall make! And
you might put in a prayer for me on the issue, some time when you’re on your
knees. No, truly, Cadfael… I wonder about this girl. Aline likes her, and
that’s recommendation enough. And she seems to like Aline—no, more than like!
Yet she never lets down her veils. When she seems most to cherish my most
cherishable lady, she is also more careful not to let slip one unguarded word
about her own situation.”
Brother Cadfael saw no paradox there. “So she would be, Hugh,” he said gravely.
“If she feels herself to be in danger, the last thing she will do is to draw in
beside her someone she values and likes. By every means in her power—and I
think she is a clever and resourceful girl—she will stand off her friends from
any share in what she is about.”
Beringar considered that long and sombrely, nursing his empty horn. “Well,
all we can do is hedge her about thick enough to stand off, likewise, whatever
move may be made against her.”
It had not occurred to him, it was only now insinuating itself into
Cadfael’s thoughts, that the next decisive move might come from
Emma herself, rather than being made against her. A piece of this mystery,
apparently the vital piece, she had in her hands; if any use was to be made of
it, it might well be at her decree.
Hugh set aside his drinking-horn and rose, brushing the summer dust from his
cotte. “Meantime, the sheriff is left with a murder on his hands, and I tell
you, Cadfael, that affair now looks less than ever like a drunken revenge by an
aggrieved youth of the town—though to tell truth, it never did look too
convincing, even if we could not discard it out of hand.”
“Surely there’s good ground now for letting the provost bail his lad out and
take him home?” said Cadfael, encouraged. “Of all the young men around this
town, Philip must be the clearest from any suspicion of this last outrage, or
the raid on the barge, either. The gaoler who turns the key on him can witness
where he’s been all this while, and swear he never left it.”
“I’m off to the castle now,” said Hugh. “I can’t vouch for the sheriff, but
I’ll certainly speak a word in his ear, and in the provost’s, too. It’s well
worth making the approach.”
He looked down, flashing out of his preoccupation with a sudden mischievous
smile, combed the fingers of one hand through the hedge of bushy greying hair
that rimmed Cadfael’s sunburned tonsure, leaving it bristling like
thorn-bushes, snapped a finger painfully against the nut-brown dome between,
and took his departure with his usual light stride and insouciant bearing,
which the unwary mistook for the mark of a frivolous man. Such small
indulgences he was more likely to permit himself, strictly with friends, when
he was engaged on something more than usually grave.
Cadfael watched him go, absently smoothing down the warlike crest Hugh had
erected. He supposed he had better be stirring, too, and hand over charge here
to Brother Mark until evening. It would not do to take his eyes off Emma for
any length of time, and Aline, to please a solicitous husband, consented to
doze for an hour or two in the afternoon, for the sake of the child.
Grandchildren by proxy, Cadfael reflected, might be a rare and pleasurable
recompense for a celibate prime. As for old age, he had not yet begun to think
about it; no doubt it had its own alleviations.
Chapter Two
For all I said,” Emma mused aloud, putting fine stitches into a linen band
for an infant’s cap, in the lofty midday light in the window of Aline’s
bedchamber, “I do grieve for those gloves of mine. Such fine leather, supple
and black, and a wealth of gold in the embroidery. I never bought such
expensive ones before.” She reached the end of her seam, and snipped off the
thread neatly. “They say there’s a very good glover has a stall in the fair,”
she said, smoothing her work. “I thought I might take a look at his wares, and
see if he has anything as fine as those I’ve lost. They tell me he’s well known
in Chester, and the countess buys from him. I think perhaps I’ll walk along the
Foregate this afternoon, and see what he has. What with all these upsets, I’ve
hardly seen anything of the fair.”
“A good idea,” said Aline. “Such a fine day, we should not be spending it
here within doors. I’ll come with you.” “Oh, no, you should not,” protested
Emma solicitously. “You nave not had your sleep this afternoon. No need to keep
me company that short way. I should be distressed if you tired yourself on my
account.”
“Oh, folly!” said Aline cheerfully. “I am so healthy I shall burst if I have
too little to do. It’s Constance and Hugh who want to make an invalid of me,
just because I’m in a woman’s best and happiest estate. And Hugh is gone to the
sheriff, and Constance is visiting with a cousin of hers in the Wyle, so who’s
to fret? I’ll slip on my shoes, and we’ll go. I should like to
buy a box of those sugared fruits your uncle brought from the east. We’ll do
that, too.”
It seemed that Emma had, after all, lost her taste for the expedition. She
sat stroking the embroidered band she had just finished, and eyed the shape of
linen cut for the crown. “I don’t know—I should finish this, perhaps. After
tomorrow there may be no choice, and I should be sorry to leave it for someone
else to finish. As for the candied fruits, I’ll ask Roger to bring you a box,
when he comes again this evening to tell me how the day has gone. Tomorrow it
will be here.”
“That’s kind,” said Aline, slipping on her shoes none the less, “but he
could hardly try on a pair of gloves for you, or choose with your eye. So let’s
go and see for ourselves. It won’t take long.”
Emma sat hesitating, but whether in a genuine endeavour to make up her mind,
or in search of a way of extricating herself from an unsatisfactory situation,
Aline could not be sure. “Oh, no, I should not! How can I give my mind to such
vanity, at a time like this! I’m ashamed that I ever thought of it. My uncle
dead, and here am I yearning after trumpery bits of finery. No, I won’t be so
shallow. Let me at least go on with my work for the child, instead of thinking
only of my own adornment.” And she picked up the cut linen. Aline noted that
the hand holding it trembled a little, and wondered whether to persist. Plainly
the girl wanted to go forth for some purpose of her own, but would not go
unless it could be alone. And alone, said Aline firmly to herself, she
certainly shall not go, if I can prevent.
“Well,” she said doubtfully, “if you’re determined to be so penitential, I
won’t play the devil and tempt you. And I’m the gainer, your sewing is so fine,
I could never match it. Who taught you so well?” She slipped off her soft
leather shoes, and sat down again. Something, at least, she had learned, better
to let well alone now. Emma welcomed the change of subject eagerly. Of her
childhood she would talk freely.
“My mother was a famous embroidress. She began to teach me as soon as I
could manage a needle, but she died when I was only eight, and Uncle Thomas
took me in. We had a housekeeper, a Flemish lady who had married a Bristol seaman, and been widowed when his ship was lost, and she taught me
everything she knew, though I could never equal her work. She used to make
altar cloths and vestments for the church, such beautiful things… ”
So a plain pair of good black gloves, thought Aline, would have done well
enough for you at any time, since you could have adorned them to your own
fancy. And those who can do such things exquisitely, seldom prefer the work of
others.
It was not difficult to keep Emma talking, but for all that, Aline could not
help wondering what was going through the girl’s mind, and how soon, and how
cunningly, she would make the next bid to slip away solitary about her
mysterious business. But as it fell out, she need not have troubled, for late
in the afternoon came a lay brother from the gatehouse, to announce that Martin
Bellecote had brought down Master Thomas’s coffin, and desired permission to
proceed with his business. Emma rose instantly, laying down her sewing, her
face pale and intent. If there was one thing certain, it was that no other
matter, however urgent, would take her away from the church until her uncle was
decently coffined and sealed down for his journey home, and prayers said for
his repose, as later she would attend the first Mass for him. Whatever he had
been to others, he had been uncle and father and friend to his orphaned
kinswoman, and no reverence, no tribute, would be omitted from his obsequies.
“I will come myself,” said Emma. “I must say farewell to him.” She had not
yet seen him, dead, but the brothers, long expert in the gentle arts that
reconcile life to death, would have made sure that she would be able to
remember him without distress.
“Shall I come with you?” offered Aline.
“You are very good, but I would rather go alone.”
Aline followed as far as the great court, and watched the little procession
cross to the cloister, Emma walking beside the handcart on which Martin and his
son wheeled the coffin. When they had lifted the heavy box and carried it in by
the south door of the church, with Emma following, Aline stood for some minutes
looking about her. At this hour most of the guests and many of the lay servants
were out at the fair, only the brothers went about their business as usual.
Through the wide gate of the distant stable-yard she could see Ivo Corbière’s
young groom rubbing down a pony, and the archer Turstan Fowler sitting on a
mountingblock, whistling as he burnished a saddle. Sober and recovered from his
debauch, he was a well-set-up and comely fellow, with the open face of one who
has not a care in the world. Evidently he was long since forgiven, and back in
favour.
Brother Cadfael, coming from the gardens, saw her still gazing pensively
towards the church. She smiled at sight of him.
“Martin has brought the coffin. They are within there, she’ll think of
nothing else now. But, Cadfael, she intends to give us all the slip when she
can. She has tried. She would see, she said, if the glover at the fair has
something to take the place of the ones she lost. But when I said I would go
with her, no, that would not do, she gave up the idea.”
“Gloves!” murmured Brother Cadfael, scrubbing thoughtfully at his chin.
“Strange, when you think of it, that it should be gloves she has on her mind,
in the middle of summer.”
Aline was in no position to follow that thought, she took it at its surface
meaning. “Why strange? We know there were some stolen from her, and here we are
at one of the few fairs where rare goods are to be bought, it follows naturally
enough. But of course the glover is only a handy excuse.”
Cadfael said no more then, but he went away very thoughtfully towards the
cloister. The strange thing was not that a girl should want to replace, while
chance offered, a lost piece of finery. It was rather that when she was
suddenly confronted by the need to pass off as simple robbery a raid she knew
to be something very different, one of the articles she claimed to have lost
should be a thing so inappropriate to the season that she felt obliged to
account for it by saying she had newly bought it in Gloucester on the journey.
Why gloves, unless she had gloves running in her mind already for another
reason? Gloves? Or glovers?
In the transept chapel Martin Bellecote and his young son set up the heavy
coffin on a draped trestle, and reverently laid the body of Master Thomas of
Bristol within it. Emma stood looking down at her uncle’s dead face for a long
time, without tears or words. It would not be painful, she found, to remember
him thus, dignified and remote in death, the bones of his cheeks
and brow and jaw more strongly outlined than in life, his florid flesh
contracted and paled into waxen austerity. Now at the last moment she wanted to
give him something to take with him into his grave, and realised that in the
buffeting of these two days she had not been able to think clearly enough to be
ready for the parting. Not the fact of death, but the absolute need of some
ceremonial tenderness, separate from the public rites, suddenly seemed to her
overwhelmingly important.
“Shall I cover him?” asked Martin Bellecote gently.
Even so soft a sound startled her. She looked round almost wonderingly. The
man, large, comely and calm, waited her orders without impatience. The boy,
grave and silent, watched her with huge hazel eyes. From her four years’
superiority over him she pondered whether so young a creature should be doing
this office, and then she understood that those eyes were preoccupied rather
with her living self than with the dead, and the vigorous, flowing sap in him
reached up towards light and life as to the sun, and recognised shadow only by
virtue of its neighbouring brightness. That was right and good.
“No, wait just a moment,” she said. “I’ll come back!”
She went quickly out into the sunlight, and looked about her for the path
that led into the gardens. The green lines of a hedge and the crowns of trees
within drew her, she came into a walk where flowers had been planted. The
brothers were great gardeners, and valued food crops for good reason, but they
had time also for roses. She chose the one bush that bore a bloom like no other,
pale yellow petals shading into rose at the tips, and plucked one flower only.
Not the buds, not even the one perfect globe, but a wide-open bloom just beyond
its prime but still unflawed. She took it back, hurrying, into the church with
her. He was not young, not even at his zenith, but settling into his autumn,
and this was the rose for him.
Brother Cadfael had watched her go, he watched her come again, and followed
her into the chapel, but held aloof in the shadows. She brought her single
flower and laid it in the coffin, beside the dead man’s heart.
“Cover him now,” she said, and stood well back to let them work in peace.
When it was done, she thanked them, and they withdrew and left
her there, as clearly was her wish. So, just as silently, did Brother Cadfael.
Emma remained kneeling on the stones of the transept, unaware of discomfort,
a great while, her eyes wide open all that time upon the closed coffin, on its
draped stand before the altar. To lie thus in the church of a great abbey, to
have a special Mass sung for him, and then to be taken home in a grand coffin
for burial with still further rites, surely that was glory, and he would have
liked it. All was to be done as he would have liked. All! He would be pleased
with her.
She knew her duty; she said prayers for him, a great many prayers, because
the form was blessedly laid down, and her mind could range while her lips
formed the proper words. She would do what he had wanted done, what he had
half-confided to her, as he had to no other. She would see his task completed,
and he would rest, pleased with her. And then… she had hardly looked beyond,
but there was a great, summer-scented breeze blowing through her spirit,
telling her she was young and fair, and wealthy into the bargain, and that boys
like the coffin-maker’s young son looked upon her with interest and pleasure.
Other young men, too, of less green years…
She rose from her knees at last, shook out her crumpled skirts, and walked
briskly out of the chapel into the nave of the church, and founding the
clustered stone pillars at the corner of the crossing, came face to face with
Ivo Corbière.
He had been waiting, silent and motionless, in his shadowy corner,
refraining even from setting foot in the chapel until her vigil was over, and
the resolution with which she had suddenly ended it flung her almost into his
arms. She uttered a startled gasp, and he put out reassuring hands to steady
her, and was in no haste to let go. In this dim place his gold head showed
darkened to bronze, and his face, stooped over her solicitously, was so gilded
by the summer that it had almost the same fine-metal burnishing.
“Did I alarm you? I’m sorry! I didn’t want to disturb you. They told me at
the gatehouse that the master-carpenter had come and gone, and you were here. I
hoped if I waited patiently I might be able to talk with you. If I have not
pressed my attentions on you until now,” he said earnestly, “it is not because
I haven’t thought of you. Constantly!”
Her eyes were raised to his face with a fascinated admiration
she would never have indulged in full light, and she quite forgot to make any
move to withdraw herself from his hold. His hands slid down her forearms, but
halted at her hands, and the touch, by mutual consent, became a clasp.
“Almost two days since I’ve spoken with you!” he said. “It’s an age, and
I’ve grudged it, but you were well-friended, and I had no right… But now that I
have you, let me keep you for an hour! Come out and walk in the gardens. I
doubt if you’ve even seen them yet.”
They went out together into the sunlight, through the cloister garth and out
into the bustle and traffic of the great court. It was almost time for Vespers,
the quietest hours of the afternoon now spent, the brothers gathering gradually
from their dispersed labours, guests returning from the fairground and the
riverside. It was a gratifying thing to walk through this populous place on the
arm of a nobleman, lord of a modest honour scattered through Cheshire and
Shropshire. For the daughter of craftsmen and merchants, a very gratifying
thing! They sat down on a stone bench in the flower-garden, on the sunny side
of the pleached hedge, with the heady fragrance of Brother Cadfael’s herbarium
wafted to them in drunken eddies on a soft breeze.
“You will have troublesome dispositions to make,” said Corbière seriously.
“If there is anything I can arrange for you, let me know of it. It will be my
pleasure to serve you. You are taking him back to Bristol for burial?”
“It’s what he would have wished. There will be a Mass for him in the
morning, and then we shall carry him back to his barge for the journey home.
The brothers have been kindness itself to me.”
“And you? Will you also return with the barge?”
She hesitated, but why not confide in him? He was considerate and kind, and
quick to understand. “No, it would be— unwise. While my uncle lived it was very
well, but without him it would not do. There is one of our men—I must say no
evil of him, for he has done none, but… He is too fond. Better we should not
travel together. But neither do I want to offer him insult, by letting him know
he is not quite trusted. I’ve told him that I must remain here a few days, that
I may be needed if the sheriff has more questions to ask, or
more is found out about my uncle’s death.”
“But then,” said Ivo with warm concern, “what of your own journey home? How
will you manage?”
“I shall stay with Lady Beringar until we can find some safe party riding
south, with women among them. Hugh Beringar will advise me. I have money, and I
can pay my way. I shall manage.”
He looked at her long and earnestly, until his gravity melted into a smile.
“Between all your well-wishers, you will certainly reach your home without
mishap. I’ll be giving my mind to it, among the rest. But now let’s forget, for
my sake, that there must be a departure, and make the most of the hours while
you are still here.” He rose, and took her by the hand to draw her up with him.
“Forget Vespers, forget we’re guests of an abbey, forget the fair and the
business of the fair, and all that such things may demand of you in future.
Think only that it’s summer, and a glorious evening, and you’re young, and have
friends… Come down with me past the fish-ponds, as far as the brook. That is
all abbey land, I wouldn’t take you beyond.”
She went with him gratefully, his hand cool and vital in hers. By the brook
below the abbey fields it was cool and fresh and bright, full of scintillating
light along the water, and birds dabbling and singing, and in the pleasure of
the moment she almost forgot all that lay upon her, so sacred and so
burdensome. Ivo was reverent and gentle, and did not press her too close, but
when she said regretfully that it was time for her to go back, for fear Aline
might be anxious about her, he went with her all the way, her hand still firmly
retained in his, and presented himself punctiliously before Aline, so that
Emma’s present guardian might study, accept and approve him. As indeed she did.
It was charmingly and delicately done. He made himself excellent company for
as long as was becoming on a first visit, invited and deferred to all Aline’s
graceful questions, and withdrew well before he had even drawn near the end of
his welcome.
“So that’s the young man who was so helpful and gallant when the riot
began,” said Aline, when he was gone. “Do you know, Emma, I do
believe you have a serious admirer there.” A wooer gained, she thought, might
come as a blessed counter-interest to a guardian lost. “He comes of good blood
and family,” said the Aline Siward who had brought two manors to her husband in
her own right, but saw no difference between her guest and herself, and
innocently ignored the equally proud and honourable standards of those born to
craft and commerce instead of land. “The Corbière s are distant kin of Earl
Ranulf of Chester himself. And he does seem a most estimable young man.”
“But not of my kind,” said Emma, as shrewd and wary as she sounded
regretful. “I am a stone-mason’s daughter, and niece to a merchant. No landed
lord is likely to become a suitor for someone like me.”
“But it’s not someone like you in question,” said Aline reasonably.
“It is you!”
Brother Cadfael looked about him, late in the evening after Compline, saw
all things in cautious balance, Emma securely settled in the guest-hall,
Beringar already home. He went thankfully to bed with his brothers, for once at
the proper time, and slept blissfully until the bell rang to wake him for
Matins. Down the night stairs and into the church the brothers filed in the
midnight silence, to begin the new day’s worship. In the faint light of the
altar candles they took their places, and the third day of Saint Peter’s Fair
had begun. The third and last.
Cadfael always rose for Matins and Lauds not sleepy and unwilling, but a degree
more awake than at any other time, as though his senses quickened to the sense
of separateness of the community gathered here, to a degree impossible by
daylight. The dimness of the light, the solidity of the enclosing shadows, the
muted voices, the absence of lay worshippers, all contributed to his sense of
being enfolded in a sealed haven, where all those who shared in it were his own
flesh and blood and spirit, responsible for him as he for them, even some for
whom, in the active and arduous day, he could feel no love, and pretended none.
The burden of his vows became also his privilege, and the night’s first worship
was the fuel of the next day’s energy.
So the shadows had sharp edges for him, the shapes of pillar
and capital and arch clamoured like vibrant notes of music, both vision and
hearing observed with heightened sensitivity, details had a quivering
insistence. Brother Mark’s profile against the candle-light was piercingly
clear. A note sung off-key by a sleepy elder stung like a bee. And the single
pale speck lying under the trestle that supported Master Thomas’s coffin was
like a hole in reality, something that could not be there. Yet it persisted. It
was at the beginning of Lauds that it first caught his eye, and after that he
could not get free of it. Wherever he looked, however he fastened upon the
altar, he could still see it out of the corner of his eye.
When Lauds ended, and the silent procession began to file back towards the
night stairs and the dortoir, Cadfael stepped aside, stooped, and picked up the
mote that had been troubling him. It was a single petal from a rose, its colour
indistinguishable by this light, but pale, deepening round the tip. He knew at
once what it was, and with this midnight clarity in him he knew how it had come
there.
Fortunate, indeed, that he had seen Emma bring her chosen rose and lay it in
the coffin. If he had not, this petal would have told him nothing. Since he
had, it told him all. With hieratic care and ceremony, after the manner of the
young when moved, she had brought her offering cupped in both hands, and not
one leaf, not one grain of yellow pollen from its open heart, had fallen to the
floor.
Whoever was hunting so persistently for something believed to be in Master
Thomas’s possession, after searching his person, his barge and his booth, had
not stopped short of the sacrilege of searching his coffin. Between Compline
and Matins it had been opened and closed again; and a single petal from the
wilting rose within had shaken loose and been wafted unnoticed over the side,
to bear witness to the blasphemy.
The Third Day of the Fair
Chapter One
Emma arose with the dawn, stole out of the wide bed she shared with
Constance, and dressed herself very quietly and cautiously, but even so the
sense of movement, rather than any sound, disturbed the maid’s sleep, and
caused her to open eyes at once alert and intelligent.
Emma laid a finger to her lips, and cast a meaning glance towards the door
beyond which Hugh and Aline were still sleeping. “Hush!” she whispered. “I’m
only going to church for Prime. I don’t want to wake anyone else.”
Constance shrugged against her pillow, raised her brows a little, and
nodded. Today there would be the Mass for the dead uncle, and then the
transference of his coffin to the barge that would take him home. Not
surprising if the girl was disposed to turn this day into a penitential
exercise, for the repose of her uncle’s soul and the merit of her own. “You
won’t go out alone, will you?”
“I’m going straight to the church,” promised Emma earnestly.
Constance nodded again, and her eyelids began to close. She was asleep
before Emma had drawn the door to very softly, and slipped away towards the
great court.
Brother Cadfael rose for Prime like the rest, but left his cell before his
companions, and went to take counsel with the only authority in whom he could
repose his latest discovery. Such a violation was the province of the abbot,
and only he had the right to hear of it first.
With the door of the abbot’s austere cell closed upon them,
they were notably at ease together, two men who knew their own minds and spoke
clearly what they had to say. The rose petal, a little shrunken and weary, but
with its yellow and pink still silken-bright, lay in the abbot’s palm like a
golden tear.
“You are sure this cannot have fallen when our daughter brought it as an
offering? It was a gentle gift,” said Radulfus.
“Not one grain of dust fell. She carried it like a vessel of wine, in both
hands. I saw every move. I have not yet seen the coffin by daylight, but I
doubt not it has been dealt with competently, and looks as it looked when the
master-carpenter firmed it down. Nevertheless, it has been opened and closed
again.”
“I take your word,” said the abbot simply. “This is vile.”
“It is,” said Cadfael and waited.
“And you cannot put name to the man who would do this thing?”
“Not yet.”
“Nor say if he has gained by it? As God forbid!”
“No, Father! But God will forbid.”
“Give your might to it,” said Radulfus, and brooded for a while in silence.
Then he said: “We have a duty to the law. Do what is best there, for I hear you
have the deputy sheriff’s ear. As for the affont to the church, to our house,
to our dead son and his heiress, I am left to read between rubrics. There will
be a Mass this morning for the dead man. The holy rite will cleanse all
foulness from his passing and his coffin. As for the child, let her be at
peace, for so she may, her dead is in the hand of God, there has no violence
been done to his soul.”
Brother Cadfael said, with hearty gratitude: “She will rest the better if
she knows nothing. She is a good girl, her grief should have every
consolation.”
“See to it, brother, as you may. It is almost time for Prime.”
Cadfael was hurrying from the abbot’s lodging towards the cloister when he
saw Emma turn in there ahead of him, and slowed his steps to be unnoticed
himself while he watched what she would do. On this of all days Emma was
entitled to every opportunity of prayer and meditation, but she also had a very private secular preoccupation of her own, and which of
these needs she was serving by this early-rising zeal there was no telling.
In at the south door went Emma, and in after her, just as discreetly, went
Brother Cadfael. The monks were already in their stalls, and concentrating all
upon the altar. The girl slipped silently round into the nave, as though she
would find herself a retired spot there in privacy; but instead of turning
aside, she continued her rapid, silent passage towards the west door, the
parish door that opened on to the Foregate, outside the convent walls. Except
during times of stress, such as the siege of Shrewsbury the previous year, it
was never closed.
In at one door and out at another, and she was free, for a little while, to
go where she would, and could return by the same way, an innocent coming back
from church.
Brother Cadfael’s sandals padded soundlessly over the tiled floor after her,
keeping well back in case she should look round, though here within he was
reasonably sure she would not. The great parish door was unlatched, she had
only to draw it open a little way, her slenderness slipped through easily, and
since this was facing due west, no betraying radiance flooded in. Cadfael gave her
a moment to turn right or left outside the door, though surely it would be to
the right, towards the fairground. What should she have to do in the direction
of the river and the town?
She was well in sight when he slid through the doorway and round the corner
of the west front, and looked along the Foregate. She did not hurry now, but
curbed her pace to that of the early buyers who were sauntering along the
highroad, halting at stalls already busy, handling goods, arguing over prices.
The last day of the fair was commonly the busiest. There were bargains to be
snapped up at the close, and lowered prices. There was bustle everywhere, even
at this hour, but the pace of the ambulant shoppers was leisurely. Emma matched
hers to it, as though she belonged among them, but for all that, she was making
her way somewhere with a purpose. Cadfael followed at a respectful distance.
Only once did she speak to anyone, and then she chose the holder of one of
the larger stalls, and it seemed that she was asking him for directions, for he
turned and pointed ahead along the street, and towards the
abbey wall. She thanked him, and went on in the direction he had indicated, and
now she quickened her pace. Small doubt that she had known all along to whom
she was bound; apparently she had not known precisely where to find him. Now
she knew. By this time all the chief merchants gathered here knew where to find
one another.
Emma had come to a halt, almost at the end of the Foregate, where a
half-dozen booths were backed into the abbey wall. It seemed that she had
arrived at her destination, yet now stood hesitant, gazing a little helplessly,
as if what she confronted surprised and baffled her. Cadfael drew nearer. She
was frowning doubtfully at the last of the booths, backed into a corner between
buttress and wall. Cadfael recognised it; a lean, suspicious face had peered
out from that hatch as the sheriff’s officers had hoisted Turstan Fowler on to
a board and borne him away to an abbey cell on the eve of the fair. The booth
of Euan of Shotwick. Here they came again, those imagined gloves, so feelingly
described, so soon stolen!
And Emma was at a loss, for the booth was fast-closed, every panel sealed,
and business all around in full swing. She turned to the nearest neighbour,
clearly questioning, and the man looked, and shrugged, and shook his head. What
did he know? There had been no sign of life there since last night, perhaps the
glover had sold out and departed.
Cadfael drew nearer. Beneath the austere white wimple, so sharp a change
from the frame of blue-black hair, Emma’s young profile looked even more tender
and vulnerable. She did not know what to do. She advanced a few steps and
raised a hand, as though she would knock at the closed shutter, but then she
wavered and drew back. From across the street a brawny butcher left his stall,
patted her amiably on the shoulder, and did the knocking for her lustily, then
stood to listen. But there was no move from within.
A large hand clapped Cadfael weightily on the back, and the cavernous voice
of Rhodri ap Huw boomed in his ear in Welsh: “What’s this, then? Master Euan
not open for trade? That I should see the day! I never knew him to miss a sale
before, or any other thing to his advantage.”
“The stall’s deserted,” said Cadfael. “The man may have left for home.”
“Not he! He was there past midnight, for I took a turn along
here to breathe the cool before going to my inn, and there was a light burning
inside there then.” No gleam from within now, though the slanting sunlight
might well pale it into invisibility. But no, that was not so, either. The
chinks between shutter and frame were utterly dark.
It was all too like what Roger Dod had found at another booth, only one day
past. But there the booth had been barred from within, and the bar hoisted
clear with a dagger. Here there was a lock, to be mastered from within or
without, and certainly no visible key.
“This I do not like,” said Rhodri ap Huw, and strode forward to try the
door, and finding it, as was expected, locked, to peer squint-eyed through the
large keyhole. “No key within,” he said shortly over his shoulder, and peered
still. “Not a movement in there.” He had Cadfael hard on his heels by then, and
three or four others closing in. “Give me room!”
Rhodri clenched the fingers of both hands in the edge of the door, set a
broad foot against the timber wall, and hauled mightily, square shoulders
gathered in one great heave. Wood splintered about the lock, small flinders
flying like motes of dust, and the door burst open. Rhodri swayed and recovered
in recoil, and was first through the opening, but Cadfael was after him fast
enough to ensure that the Welshman touched nothing within. They craned into the
gloom together, cheek by jowl.
The glover’s stall was in chaos, shelves swept clear, goods scattered like
grain over the floor. On a straw palliasse along the rear wall his cloak lay
sprawled, and on an iron stand beside, a quenched candle sagged in folds of
tallow. It took them a few seconds to accustom their eyes to the dimness and see
clearly. Tangled in his spilled stock of belts, baldricks, gloves, purses and
saddle-bags, Euan of Shotwick lay on his back, knees drawn up, a coarse sacking
bag drawn half-over his lean face and greying head. Beneath the hem of the hood
his thin-lipped mouth grinned open in a painful rictus, large white teeth
staring, and the angle at which his head lay had the horrible suggestion of a
broken wooden puppet.
Cadfael turned and flung up the shutter of the booth, letting in the morning
light. He stooped to touch the contorted neck and hollow cheek.
“Cold,” said Rhodri, behind him, not attempting to verify his judgment, which
for all that was accurate enough. Euan’s flesh was chilling. “He’s dead,” said
Rhodri flatly.
“Some hours,” said Cadfael.
In the stress of the moment he had forgotten Emma, but the shriek she gave
caused him to swing round in haste and dismay. She had crept in fearfully to
peer over the shoulders of the neighbours, and stood staring with eyes wide
with horror, both small fists crushed against her mouth. “Oh, no!” she said in
a whisper. “Not dead! Not he, too… ”
Cadfael took her in his arms, and thrust her bodily before him out of the
booth, elbowing the gaping onlookers out of his way. “Go back! You mustn’t stay
here. Go back before you’re missed, and leave this to me.” He wondered if she
even heard his rapid murmur into her ear; she was shaking and white as milk,
her blue eyes fixed and huge with shock. He looked about him urgently for
someone to whom he could safely confide her, for he doubted if she should be
left to return alone, and yet he did not care to leave this scene until
Beringar should be here to take charge, or one of the sheriff’s sergeants at
least. The sudden alarmed shout of recognition that came from the rear of the
gathering crowd was a most welcome sound.
“Emma! Emma!” Ivo Corbière came cleaving an unceremonious way through the
press, like a sudden vehement wind in a cornfield, bludgeoning the standing
stems out of its path. She turned at the call, and a spark of returning life
sprang up in her eyes. Thankfully Cadfael thrust her into the young man’s arms,
which reached eagerly and anxiously to receive her.
“For God’s sake, what has happened to her? What… ” His glance flashed from
her stunned visage to Cadfael’s, and beyond, to the open door with its
splintered panel. Over her head his lips framed silently for Cadfael: “Not
again? Another?”
“Take her back,” said Cadfael shortly. “Take care of her. And tell Hugh
Beringar to come. We have sheriff’s business here within.”
All the way back along the Foregate, Corbière kept a supporting arm about
her, and curbed his long stride to hers, and all the way he
poured soothing, caressing words into her ear, while she, until they had almost
reached the west door of the church, said nothing at all, simply walked
docilely beside him, distantly aware of the lulling sound and the comforting
touch. Then suddenly she said: “He’s dead. I saw him, I know.”
“A bare glimpse you had,” said Ivo consolingly. “It may not be so.”
“No,” said Emma, “I know the man is dead. How could it happen? Why?”
“There are always such acts, somewhere, robberies, violence and evil. It is
sad, but it is not new.” His fingers pressed her hand warmly. “It is no fault
of yours, and alas, there is nothing you or I can do about it. I wish I could
make you forget it. In time you will forget.”
“No,” she said. “I shall never forget this.”
She had meant to return by the church, as she had left, but now it no longer
mattered. As far as he or any other was concerned, she had simply set out early
to buy some gloves, or at least to view what the glover had to offer. She went
in with Ivo by the gatehouse. By the time he had brought her tenderly on his
arm to the guest-hall she had regained her composure. There was a little colour
in her face again, and her voice was alive, even if its tone indicated that
life was painful.
“I’m recovered now, Ivo,” she said. “You need not trouble for me further. I
will tell Hugh Beringar that he is needed.”
“Brother Cadfael entrusted you to me,” said Ivo with gentle and confident
authority, “and you did not reject me. I shall fulfil my errand exactly. As I
hope,” he said smiling, “I may perform any other missions you may care to
entrust to me hereafter.”
Hugh Beringar came with four of the sheriff’s men, dispersed the crowd that
hung expectantly round the booth of Euan of Shotwick, and listened to the
accounts rendered by the neighbouring stall-holders, by the butcher from over
the road, and by Rhodri ap Huw, for whom Cadfael interpreted sentence by
sentence. In no haste to go, for as he said, his best lad was back with the
boat from Bridgnorth and competent to take charge of what stock
he still had to sell, the Welshman nonetheless showed no unbecoming desire to
linger, once his witness was taken. Imperturbable and all-beholding, he ambled
away at the first indication that the law had done with him. Others, more
persistent, hung about the booth in a silent, watchful circle, but were kept
well away from earshot. Beringar drew the door to. The opened hatches gave
light enough.
“Can I take the man’s account for fair and true?” asked Hugh, casting a
glance after Rhodri’s retreating back. There was no backward glance from the
Welshman, his assurance was absolute.
“To the letter, for all that happened here from the time I came on the
scene. He’s an excellent observer, there’s little he misses of what concerns
him, or may concern him, and what does not. He does business, too, his trade
here is no pretext. But it may be only half his business that we see.”
There were only the two of them within there now, two living and the dead
man. They stood one either side of him, drawn back to avoid disturbing either
his body or the litter of leatherwork scattered about and over him.
“He says there was a light showing through the chinks here past midnight,”
said Beringar. “The light is quenched now, not burned out. And if he locked his
door after closing the booth for the night… ”
“As he would,” said Cadfael. “Rhodri’s account of him rings true. A man
complete in himself, trusting no one, able to take care of himself, until now.
He would have locked his door.”
“Then he also unlocked it, to let in his murderer. The lock never was forced
until now, as you saw. Why should a wary man unlock his door to anyone in the
small hours?”
“Because he was expecting someone,” said Cadfael, “though not the someone
who came. Because, it may be, he had been expecting someone all these three
days, and was relieved when the expected message came at last.”
“So relieved that he ceased to be cautious? Given your Welshman’s estimate
of him, I should doubt it.”
“So should I,” agreed Cadfael, “unless there was a private word he was
waiting for, and it was known and given. A name, perhaps. For you see, Hugh, I
think he was already well aware that the one he had expected to
deliver the message was never going to tap at his door by night, or stop in the
Foregate to pass the time with him.”
“You mean,” said Hugh, “Thomas of Bristol, who is dead.”
“Who else? How many strange chances can come together, all against what is
likely, or even possible? A merchant is killed, his barge searched, his booth
searched, then, dear God, his coffin! I have not yet had time, Hugh, to tell
you of that.” He told it now. He had the rose-petal in the breast of his habit,
wrapped in a scrap of linen; it still spoke as eloquently as before. “You may
trust my eyes, I know it did not fall earlier, I know it has been in the coffin
with him. Now that same man’s niece makes occasion to come by stealth to this
glover’s stall, only to find the glover dead like her uncle. It is a long list
of assaults upon all things connected with Thomas of Bristol. Now, since this
unknown treasure was not found even in his coffin, for safe-conduct back to
Bristol in default of delivery, the next point of search has been here—where
Master Thomas should have delivered it.”
“They would need to have foreknowledge of that.”
“Or good reason to guess aright.”
“By your witness,” said Hugh, pondering, “the coffin was opened and closed
between Compline and Matins. Before midnight. When would you say, Cadfael—your
experience is longer than mine—when would you say this man died?”
“In the small hours. By the second hour after midnight, I judge, he was
dead. After the coffin, it seems, they were forced to the conclusion that
somehow, for all they had a watch on Master Thomas from his arrival, and
disposed of him before ever the fair started, yet somehow he, or someone else
on his behalf, must have slipped through their net, and delivered the precious
charge. This poor soul certainly opened his door last night to someone he
believed had business with him. The mention of a privileged name… a password…
He let in his murderer, but what he had expected was the thing promised.”
“Then even now,” said Hugh sharply, “with two murders on their souls, they
have not what they wanted. He thought they were bringing it. They trusted to
find it here. And neither of them had it. Both were deceived.” He brooded with
a brown fist clamping his jaw, and his black brows down-drawn
in unaccustomed solemnity. “And Emma came here… by stealth.”
“She did. Not every man,” said Cadfael, “has your view of women, or mine.
Most of your kind, most of mine, would never dream of looking in a woman’s
direction to find anything of importance in hand. Especially a mere child,
barely grown. Not until every other road was closed, and they were forced to
notice a woman there in the thick of the matter. Who just might be what they
sought.”
“And who has now betrayed herself,” said Hugh grimly. “Well, at least she
reached the guest-hall safely, thanks to Corbière. I have left her with Aline,
very shaken, for all her strength of will, and she will not stir a step this
day unguarded. That I can promise. Between us I think we can take care of Emma.
Now let’s see if this poor wretch has anything to tell us that we don’t yet
know.”
He stooped and drew back the coarse sack that covered half the glover’s
narrow face, from eyebrow on one side to jaw on the other. A broken bruise in
the greying hair above the left temple indicated a right-handed blow as soon as
the door was opened to his visitor, meant to stun him, probably, until he could
be muffled in the sack and gagged like Warin. Here it was a case of gaining
entry and confronting a wide-awake man, not a timid sleeper.
“Much the same manner as the other one,” said Cadfael, “and I doubt if they
ever meant to kill. But he was not so easily put out of the reckoning. He put
up a fight. And his neck is broken. By the look of it, one made round behind
him to secure this blindfold, and in the struggle he gave them, tried all too
hard to haul him backwards by it. He was wiry and agile, but his bones were
aging, and too brittle to sustain it. I don’t think it was intended. We should
have found him neatly bound and still alive, like Warin, if he had not fought
them. Once they knew he was dead, they made their search in haste, and left all
as it fell.”
Beringar brushed aside the light tangle of girdles and straps and gloves
that littered the floor and lay over the body. Euan’s right arm was covered
from the elbow down by the skirts of his own gown, kicked out of the way of the
searchers in their hunt. When the folds were drawn down Hugh
let out a sharp whistle of surprise, for in the dead man’s hand was a long
poniard, the naked blade grooved, and ornamented with gilding near the hilt. At
his belt, half-hidden now under his right hip, the scabbard lay empty.
“A man of his hands! And see, he’s marked one of them for us!” There was
blood on the point of the blade, and drawn up by the grooving for some three
fingers’ breadth in two thin crimson lines, now drying to black.
“Rhodri ap Huw said of him,” Cadfael remembered, “that he was a solitary
soul who trusted nobody—his own porter and his own watchman. He said he wore a
weapon, and knew how to use it.” He went on his knees beside the body, and
cleared away the debris that still lay about it, eying and handling from head
to foot. “You’ll have him away to the castle, I suppose, or the abbey, and look
him over more carefully, but I do believe the only blood he’s lost is this
smear on his brow. This on the dagger is not his.”
“If only we could as easily say whose it is!” said Hugh dryly, sitting on
his heels with the nimbleness of the young on the other side of the body.
Brother Cadfael eased creaky elderly knees on the hard boards, and briefly
envied him. The young man lifted the stiffening arm, and tested the grip of the
clenched fingers. “He holds fast!” It took him some effort to loosen the
convulsive grasp enough to slip the hilt of the dagger free. In the slanting
light from the open hatch something gleamed briefly, waving at the tip of the
blade, and again vanished, as motes of dust come and go in gold in bright
sunlight. There was also what seemed at first to be a thin encrustation of
blood fringing the steel on one edge. Cadfael exclaimed, leaning to point. “A
yellow hair—There it shows again!” The flashing gleam curled and twisted as
Hugh turned the dagger in his hand.
“Not a hair, a fine, yellowish thread. Thread of flax, not bleached. This
grooving has ripped out a shred of cloth, and the blood has stuck it fast.
See!”
A mere wisp of brown material it was, a fringe along the groove that had
held it. Narrow as a blade of grass, but when Cadfael carefully took hold of a
thread at the end and drew it out straight, it stretched to the length of his
hand. The colour, though fouled by dried blood, showed plain at
one edge, a light russet-brown; and at the end of the sliver floated gaily the
long, fine flax thread, scalloped like a curly hair.
“A sliced tear a hand long,” said Cadfael, “and ending at a hem, for surely
this thread sewed the edging, and the dagger ripped out a length of the
stitching.” He narrowed his eyes, and considered, imagining Euan facing the
door as he opened it, the instant blow that failed to tame him, and then his
rapid drawing of his poniard and striking with it. Almost brow to brow and
breast to breast, a man good with his right hand, and his attacker’s heart an
open target.
“He struck for the heart,” said Cadfael with conviction. “So would I, or so
would I have done once. The other man, surely, slipped behind him and spoiled
the stroke, but that is where he aimed. Someone, somewhere, has a torn cotte.
It might be in the left breast, or it might be in the sleeve. The man’s arms
would be raised, reaching to grapple him. I should say the left sleeve, ripping
from the hem halfway to the elbow. The sewing thread was caught first, and pulled
out a length of stitches.”
Hugh considered that respectfully, and found no fault with it. “Much of a
scratch, would you guess? He did not drip blood to the doorway. It could not
have been enough to need much stanching.”
“The sleeve would hold it. Likely only a graze, but a long graze. It will be
there to be seen.”
“If we knew where to look!” Hugh gave a short bark of laughter at the
thought of sending sergeants about this teeming marketplace to ask every man to
roll up his left sleeve and show his arm. “A simple matter! Still, no reason
why you and I, and all the men I can spare and trust, should not be keeping our
eyes open all the rest of this day for a torn sleeve—or a newly cobbled one.”
He rose, and turned to beckon his nearest man from the open hatch. “Well,
we’ll have him away from here, and do what we can. A word with your Rhodri ap
Huw wouldn’t come amiss, and I fancy you might get more out of him in his own
tongue than ever I should at second hand. If he knows this man so well, prick
him on to talk, and bring me what you learn.”
“That I’ll do,” said Cadfael, clambering stiffly from his
knees.
“I must go first to the castle, and report what we’ve found. One thing I’ll
make certain of this time,” said Hugh. “The sheriff was in no mood to listen too
carefully last night, but after this he’ll have to turn young Corviser loose on
his father’s warranty, like the rest of them. It would take a more pig-headed
man than Prestcote to believe the lad had any part in the first death, seeing
the trail of offences that have followed while he was in prison. He shall eat
his dinner at home today.”
Rhodri was not merely willing to spend an hour pouring the fruits of his
wisdom and experience into Brother Cadfael’s ear, he was hovering with that
very thing in mind as soon as the corpse of Euan of Shotwick had been carried
away, and the booth closed, with one of the sheriff’s men on guard. Though
ever-present, he had the gift of being unobtrusive until he chose to obtrude,
and then could appear from an unexpected direction, and as casually as if only
chance had brought him there.
“No doubt you’ll have sold all you brought with you,” said Cadfael,
encountering him thus between the stalls, clearly untroubled by business.
“Goods of quality are recognized everywhere,” said Rhodri, sharp eyes
twinkling merrily. “My lads are clearing the last few jars of honey, and the
wool’s long gone. But I’ve a half-full bottle there, if you care to share a cup
at this hour? Mead, not wine, but you’ll be happy with that, being a Welshman
yourself.”
They sat on heaped trestles already freed from their annual use by the
removal of small tradesmen who had sold out their stock, and set the bottle
between them.
“And what,” asked Cadfael, with a jerk of his head towards the guarded
booth, “do you make of that affair this morning? After all that’s gone before?
Have we more birds of prey this way than usual, do you think? It may be they’ve
taken fright and left the shires where there’s still fighting, and we get the
burden of it.”
Rhodri shook his shaggy head, and flashed his large white teeth
out of the thicket in a grin. “I would say you’ve had a more than commonly
peaceful and well-mannered fair, myself—apart from the misfortunes of two
merchants only. Oh, tonight’s the last night, and there’ll be a few drunken
squabbles and a brawl or two, I daresay, but what is there in that? But chance
has played no part in what has happened to Thomas of Bristol. Chance never goes
hounding one man for three days through hundreds of his fellows, yet never grazes
one of the others.”
“It has more than grazed Euan of Shotwick,” remarked Cadfael dryly.
“Not chance! Consider, brother! Earl Ranulf of Chester’s eyes and ears comes
to a Shropshire fair and is killed. Thomas of Bristol, from a city that holds
by Earl Robert of Gloucester, comes to the same fair, and is killed the very
night of his coming. And after his death, everything he brought with him is
turned hither and yon, but precious little stolen, from all I hear.” And
certainly he had a way of hearing most of what was said within a mile of him,
but at least he had made no mention of the violation of Master Thomas’s coffin.
Either that had not reached his ears, and never would, or else he had been the
first to know of it, and would be the last ever to admit it. The parish door
was always open, no need to set foot in the great court or pass the gatehouse.
“Something Thomas brought to Shrewsbury is of burning interest to somebody, it
seems to me, and the somebody failed to get hold of it from man, barge or stall.
And the next thing that happens is that Euan of Shotwick is also killed in the
night, and all his belongings ransacked. I would not say but things were stolen
there. They may have learned enough for that, and his goods are small and
portable, and why despise a little gain on the side? But for all that— No, two
men from opposite ends of a divided country, meeting midway, on important
private business? It could be so! Gloucester’s man and Chester’s man.”
“And whose,” wondered Cadfael aloud, “was the third man?”
“The third?”
“Who took such an interest in the other two that they died of it. Whose man
would he be?”
“Why, there are other factions, and every one of them needs
its intelligencers. There’s the king’s party—they might well feel a strong
interest if they noted Gloucester’s man and Chester’s man attending the same
fair midway between. And not only the king—there are others who count
themselves kings on their own ground, besides Chester, and they also need to
know what such a one as Chester is up to, and will go far to block it if it
threatens their own profit. And then there’s the church, brother, if you’ll
take it no offence is meant to the Benedictines. For you’ll have heard by now
that the king has dealt very hardly with some of his bishops this last few
weeks, put up all manner of clerical backs, and turned his own brother and best
ally, Bishop Henry of Winchester, who’s papal legate into the bargain, into a
bitter enemy. Bishop Henry himself might well have a finger in this pie, though
I doubt if he can have had word of things afoot here in time, being never out
of the south. But Lincoln, or Worcester—all such lords need to know what’s
going on, and for men of influence there are always plenty of bully-boys for
hire, who’ll do the labouring work while their masters sit inviolable at home.”
And so, thought Cadfael, could wealthy men sit inviolable here in their
stalls, in full view of hundreds, while their hired bully-boys do the dirty
work. And this black Welshman is laying it all out for me plain to be seen, and
taking delight in it, too! Cadfael knew when he was being deliberately teased!
What he could not be quite sure of was whether this was the caprice of a
blameless but mischievous man, or the sport of a guilty one taking pleasure in
his own immunity and cleverness. The black eyes sparkled and the white teeth
shone. And why grudge him his enjoyment, if something useful could yet be
gleaned from it? Besides, his mead was excellent.
“There must,” said Cadfael thoughtfully, “be others here from Cheshire, even
some from close to Ranulf’s court. You yourself, for instance, come from not so
far away, and are knowledgeable about those parts, and the men and the mood
there. If you are right, whoever has committed these acts knew where to look
for the thing they wanted, once they gave up believing that it was still among
the effects of Thomas of Bristol. Now how would they be able to choose, say,
between Euan of Shotwick and you? As an instance, of course! No offence!”
“None in the world!” said Rhodri heartily. “Why, bless you!
The only reason I know myself is because I am myself, and know I’m not
in Ranulf of Chester’s employ. But you can’t know that, not certainly,
and neither can any other. There’s a small point, of course—Thomas of Bristol,
I doubt, spoke no Welsh.”
“And you no English,” sighed Cadfael. “I had forgotten!”
“There was a traveller from down towards Gloucester stayed overnight at
Ranulf s court not a month ago,” mused Rhodri, twinkling happily at his own
omniscience, “a jongleur who got unusual favour, for he was called in to play a
stave or two to Ranulf and his lady in private, after they left the hall at
night. If Earl Ranulf has an ear for music, it’s the first I’ve heard of it. It
would certainly need more than a French virelai to fetch him in for his
father-in-law’s cause. He would want to know what were the prospects of
success, and what his reward might be.” He slanted a radiant smile along his
shoulder at Cadfael, and poured out the last of the mead. “Your health,
brother! You, at least, are delivered from the greed for gain. I have often
wondered, is there a passion large enough to take its place? I am still in the
world myself, you understand.”
“I think there might be,” said Cadfael mildly. “For truth, perhaps? Or
justice?”
Chapter Two
The gaoler unlocked the door of Philip’s cell somewhat before noon, and
stood back to let the provost enter. Father and son eyed each other hard, and
though Geoffrey Corviser continued to look grimly severe, and Philip obdurate
and defiant, nevertheless the father was mollified and the son reassured. By
and large, they understood each other pretty well.
“You are released to my warranty,” said the provost shortly. “The charge is
not withdrawn, not yet, but you’re trusted to appear when called, and until
then, let’s hope I may get some sensible work out of you.”
“I may come home with you?” Philip sounded dazed; he knew nothing of what
had been going on outside, and was unprepared for this abrupt release.
Hurriedly he brushed himself down, all too aware that he presented no very
savoury spectacle to walk through the town at the provost’s side. “What made
them change their mind? There’s no one been taken for the murder?” That would
clear him utterly in Emma’s eyes, no doubts left.
“Which murder?” said his father grimly. “Never mind now, you shall hear,
once we have you out of here.”
“Ay, stir yourself, lad,” advised the goodhumoured warder, jingling his
keys, “before they change their minds again. The rate things are happening at
this year’s fair, you might find the door slammed again before you can get
through it.”
Philip followed his father wonderingly out of the castle. The
noon light in the outer ward fell warm and dazzling upon him, the sky was a
brilliant, deep blue, like Emma’s eyes when she widened them in anxiety or
alarm. It was impossible not to feel elated, whatever reproaches might still
await him at home; and hope and the resilience of youth blossomed in him as his
father recounted brusquely all that had happened while his son fretted in
prison without news.
“Then there have been two attacks upon Mistress Vernold’s boat and booth,
her goods taken, her men assaulted?” He had quite forgotten his own bedraggled
appearance, he was striding towards home with his head up and his visage roused
and belligerent, looking, indeed, very much as he had looked when he led his
ill-fated expedition across the bridge on the eve of the fair. “And no one
seized for it? Nothing done? Why, she herself may be in danger!” Indignation
quickened his steps. “For God’s sake, what’s the sheriff about?”
“He has enough to do breaking up unseemly riots by you and your like,” said
his father smartly, but could not raise so much as a blush from his incensed
offspring. “But since you want to know, Mistress Vernold is in the guest-hall
of the abbey, safe enough, in the care of Hugh Beringar and his lady. You’d do
better to be thinking about your own troubles, my lad, and mind your own step,
for you’re not out of the wood yet.”
“What did I do that was so wrong? I went only one pace beyond what you did
yourself the day before.” He did not even sound aggrieved about being judged
hard, he made that brief defence only absently, his mind all on the girl. “Even
in the guest-hall she may not be out of reach, if this is all some determined
plot against her uncle and all his family.” In the death of one more tradesman
at the fair he showed less interest, shocking though it was, since it seemed to
have little or nothing to do with the vindictive catalogue of offences against
Master Thomas and all his possessions. “She spoke so fairly,” he said. “She
would not have me accused of worse than I did.”
“True enough! She was a fine, honest witness, no denying it. But no business
of yours now, she’s well cared for. It’s your mother you need to be thinking
of, she’s been in a fine taking over you all this while, and now they’re
looking in other directions for the one who did the
killing—with one eye still on you, though, mind!—she’ll likely take some
sweetening. One way or another, you’ll get a warm welcome.”
Philip was far beyond minding that, though as soon as he entered the house
behind the shoemaker’s shop he did indeed get a warm welcome, not one way or
another, but both ways at once. Mistress Corviser, who was large, handsome and
voluble, looked round from her fireside hob, uttered a muted shriek, dropped
her ladle, and came billowing like a ship in full sail to embrace him, shake
him, wrinkle her nose at the prison smell of him, abuse him for the damage to
his best cotte and hose, box his ears for laughing at her tirade, exclaim
lamentably over the dried scar at his temple, and demand that he sit down at
once and let her crop the hair that adhered to the matted blood, and clean up
the wound. By far the easiest thing to do was to submit to all, and let her talk
herself out.
“The trouble and shame you’ve put us to, the heartaches you’ve cost me,
wretch, you don’t deserve that I should feed you, or wash and mend for you. The
provost’s son in prison, think of our mortification! Are you not ashamed of
yourself?” She was sponging away the encrusted blood, and relieved to find so
insignificant a scar remaining; but when he said blithely: “No, mother!” she
pulled his hair smartly.
“Then you should be, you good-for-nothing! There, that’s not so bad. Now I
hope you’re going to settle down to work, and make up for all the trouble
you’ve made for us, instead of traipsing about the town egging on other
people’s sons to mischief with your wild ideas… ”
“They were the same ideas father and all the guild merchant had, mother, you
should have scolded them. And you ask those who’re wearing my shoes whether
there’s much amiss with my work.” He was a very good workman, in fact, as she
would have asserted valiantly if anyone else had cast aspersions on his
diligence and ability. He hugged her impulsively, and kissed her cheek, and she
put him off impatiently, with what was more a slap than a caress. “Get along
with you, and don’t come moguing me until you’re cleared of the worse charge,
and have paid your fine for the riot. Now come and eat your dinner!”
It was an excellent dinner, such as she produced on festivals and
saints’ days. After it, instead of shedding the clothes he had worn day and
night in his cell, he shaved carefully, made a bundle of his second-best suit,
and left the house with it under his arm.
“Now where are you going?” she demanded inevitably.
“To the river, to swim and get clean again.” They had a garden upstream,
below the town hall, as many of the burgesses had, for growing their own fruit
and vegetables, and there was a small hut there, and a sward where he could dry
in the sun. He had learned to swim there, shortly after he learned to walk. He
did not tell her where he was going afterwards. It was a pity he would have to
present himself in his second-best coat, but in this hot summer weather perhaps
he need not put it on at all; in shirt and hose most men look the same,
provided the shirt is good linen and well laundered.
The water was not even cold in the sandy shallow by the garden, but after
his meal he did not stay in long, or swim out into deep water. But it was good
to feel like himself again, cleansed even of the memory of his failure and
downfall. There was a still place under the bank where the water hung almost
motionless, and showed him a fair image of his face, and the thick bush of
red-brown hair which he combed and straightened with his fingers. He dressed as
carefully as he had shaved, and set off back to the bridge, and over it to the
abbey. The town’s grievance, which he had had on his mind the last time he came
this way, was quite forgotten; he had other important business now on the abbey
side of Severn.
“There’s one here,” said Constance, coming in from the great court with a
small, private smile on her lips, “who asks to speak with Mistress Vernold. And
not a bad figure of a young fellow, either, though still a thought coltish
about the legs. He asked very civilly.”
Emma had looked up quickly at the mention of a young man; now that she had
gone some way towards accepting what had happened, and coming to terms with a
disaster which, after all, she had not caused, she had been remembering words
Ivo had used, almost disregarded then in her shocked daze, but significant and
warming now.
“Messire Corbière?”
“No, not this time. This one I don’t know, but he says his
name is Philip Corviser.”
“I know him,” said Aline, and smiled over her sewing. “The provost’s son,
Emma, the boy you spoke for in the sheriff’s court. Hugh said he would see him
set free today. If there’s one soul can say he has done no evil to you or any
these last two days, he’s the man. Will you see him? It would be a kindness.”
Emma had almost forgotten him, even his name, but she recalled the plea he
had made for her belief in him. So much had happened between. She remembered
him now, unkempt, bruised and soiled, pallid-sick after his drunkenness, but
still with a despairing dignity. “Yes, I remember him. Of course I’ll see him.”
Philip followed Constance into the room. Fresh from the river, with damp
hair curling thickly about his head, shaven and glowing and in fierce earnest,
but without the aggression of the manner she had first seen in him, this was a
very different person from the humiliated prisoner of the court. The last look
he had given her, chin on shoulder, as he was dragged out… yes, she saw the
resemblance there. He made his reverence to Aline, and then to Emma.
“Madam, I am released on my father’s bail. I came to say my thanks to
Mistress Emma for speaking so fairly for me, when I had no right to expect
goodwill from her.”
“I’m glad to see you free, Philip,” said Aline serenely, “and looking none
the worse. You will like to speak with Emma alone, I daresay, and company other
than mine may be good for her, for here we talk nothing but babies.” She rose,
folding her sewing carefully to keep the needle in view as she carried it.
“Constance and I will sit on the bench by the hall door, in the sun. The light
is better there, and I am no such expert needlewoman as Emma. You can be
undisturbed here.”
Out she went, and they saw a ray of sun from the open outer door sparkle in
her piled gold hair, before Constance followed, and closed the door between.
The two of them were left, gazing gravely at each other.
“The first thing I wanted to do with freedom,” said Philip, “was to see you again,
and thank you for what you did for me. As I do, with all my
heart. There were some who bore witness there who had known me most of my life,
and surely had no grudge against me, and yet testified that I had been the
first to strike, and done all manner of things I knew I had not done. But you,
who had suffered through my act, though God knows I never willed it, you spoke
absolute truth for me. It took a generous heart and a fair mind to do so much
for an unknown whom you had no cause to love.” He had not chosen that word, it
had come naturally in the commonplace phrase, but when he heard it, it raised a
blush like fire in his own face, faintly reflected the next moment in hers.
“All I did was to tell the truth of what I had seen,” she said. “So should we
all have done, it’s no virtue, but an obligation. It was shame that they did
not. People do not think what it is they are saying, or trouble to be clear
about what they have seen. But that’s all by now. I’m very glad they’ve let you
go. I was glad when Hugh Beringar said they must, taking into account what has
been happening, for which you certainly can bear no blame. But perhaps you have
not heard… ”
“Yes, I have heard. My father has told me.” Philip sat down beside her in
the place Aline had vacated, and leaned towards her earnestly. “There is some
very evil purpose against you and yours, surely, how else to account for so
many outrages? Emma, I am afraid for you… I fear danger threatening even you.
I’m grieved for your loss, and all the distress you’ve suffered. I wish there
might be some way in which I could serve you.”
“Oh, but you need not be troubled for me,” she said. “You see I am in the
best and kindest hands possible, and tomorrow the fair will all be over, and
Hugh Beringar and Aline will help me to find a safe way to go home.”
“Tomorrow?” he said, dismayed.
“It may not be tomorrow. Roger Dod will take the barge down-river tomorrow,
but it may be that I must stay a day or two more. We have to find a party going
south by Gloucester, for safe-conduct, and with some other women for company.
It may take a day or two.”
Even a day or two would be gold; but after that she would be gone, and he
might never see her again. And still, confronted by this cause
for unhappiness on his own part, he could only think of her. He could not rid
himself of the feeling that she was threatened.
“In only two days, see how many ill things have happened, and always close
to you, and what may not still happen in a day or two more? I wish you were
safe home this moment,” he said passionately, “though God knows I’d rather lose
my right hand than the sight of you.” He was not even aware that that same
right hand had taken possession of her left one, and was clasping it hard. “At
least find me some way of serving you before you go. If nothing more, tell me
you know that I never did harm to your uncle… ”
“Oh, yes,” she said warmly, “that I can, most willingly. I never did truly
believe it. You are no such person, to strike a man dead by stealth. I never
thought it. But still we don’t know who did it! Oh, don’t doubt me, I’m sure of
you. But I wish it could be shown clear to the world, for your sake.”
It was said very prettily and sincerely, and he took it to his heart
gratefully, but it was said out of generous fellow-feeling, and nothing deeper,
and he was gallingly sure of it while he hugged at least the kindness to him.
“For mine, too,” she said honestly, “and for the sake of justice. It is not
right that a mean murderer should escape his due, and it does aggrieve me that
my uncle’s death should go unpaid for.”
Find me some way of serving you, he had said; and perhaps she had. There was
nothing he would not have undertaken for her; he would have lain over the
threshold of any room in which she was, like a dog on guard, if she had needed
it, but she did not, she was cared for by the sheriff’s own deputy and his
lady, and they would watch over her until they saw her safely on her way home.
But when she spoke of the unknown who had slipped a dagger in her uncle’s back,
her great eyes flared with the angry blue of sapphires, and her face grew
marble-clear and taut. Her complaint was his commission. He would achieve
something for her yet.
“Emma,” he began in a whisper, and drew breath to commit himself deep as the
sea.
The door opened, though neither of them had heard the knock; Constance put
her head into the room.
“Messire Corbière waits to see you, when you are free,” she
said, and withdrew, but left the door ajar. Evidently Messire Corbière ought
not to be kept waiting long.
Philip was on his feet. Emma’s eyes had kindled at the name like distant
stars, forgetting him. “You may remember him,” she said, still sparing a morsel
of her attention for Philip, “the young gentleman who came to help us on the
jetty, along with Brother Cadfael. He has been very kind to me.”
Philip did remember, though his bludgeoned senses at the time had seen
everything distorted; a slender, elegant, assured lordling who leaped a rolling
cask to catch her in his arm at the water’s edge, and further, to be just to
him, had appeared in the sheriff’s court and borne out Emma’s honest story—
even if he had also produced his falconer to testify to the silly threats
Philip had been indulging in, drunk as he was, later that evening. Testimony
Philip did not dispute, since he knew he had been incapable of clear thought or
positive recollection. He recalled his disgusting self, and smarted at the
thought. And the young lord with the bright gold crest and athlete’s prowess
had showed so admirable by contrast.
“I’ll take my leave,” said Philip, and allowed her hand to slip out of his,
though with reluctance and pain. “For the journey, and always, I wish you
well.”
“So do I you,” she said, and with unconscious cruelty added: “Will you ask
Messire Corbière to come in?”
Never in his life until then had Philip been required to draw himself to his
full stature, body and mind. His departure was made with a dignity he had not
dreamed he could achieve, and meeting Corbière face to face in the hall, he did
indeed bid him within, at Mistress Emma’s invitation, very civilly and amiably,
while he burned with jealousy inwardly. Ivo thanked him pleasantly, and if he
looked him over, did so with interest and respect, and with no apparent
recollection of ever having seen him in less acceptable circumstances.
No one would have guessed, thought Philip, marching out into the sunshine of
the great court, that a working shoemaker and a landed lord rubbed shoulders
there. Well, he may have several manors in Cheshire and one in Shropshire, and
be distant kin of Earl Ranulf, and welcome at his court; but I have something I
can try to do for her, and I have a craft as honourable as his
noble blood, and if I succeed, whether she comes my way or no, she’ll never
forget me.
Brother Cadfael came in at the gatehouse after some hours of fruitless
prowling about the fair and the riverside. Among hundreds of men busy about
their own concerns, the quest of a gashed sleeve, or one recently and hastily
mended, is much the same as hunting one straw in a completed stack. His trouble
was that he knew no other way to set about it. Moreover, the hot and settled
weather continued unbroken, and most of those about the streets and the stalls
were in their shirt-sleeves. There was a point there, he reflected. The glover’s
dagger had drawn blood, therefore it had reached the skin, but never a thread
of white or unbleached linen had it brought away with the sliver of brown
cloth. If the intruder had worn a shirt, he had worn it with sleeves rolled up,
and it had emerged unscathed, and could now cover his graze, and if the wound
had needed one, his bandage. Cadfael returned to tend the few matters needing
him in his workshop, and be ready for Vespers in good time, more because he was
at a loss how to proceed than for any other reason. An interlude of quiet and
thought might set his wits working again.
In the great court his path towards the garden happened to cross Philip’s
from the guest-hall to the gatehouse. Deep in his own purposes, the young man
almost passed by unnoticing, but then he checked sharply, and turned to look
back.
“Brother Cadfael!” Cadfael swung to face him, startled out of just as deep a
preoccupation. “It is you!” said Philip. “It was you who spoke for me, after
Emma, in the sheriff’s court. And I knew you then for the one who came to help
me to my feet and out of trouble, when the sergeants broke up the fight on the
jetty. I never had the chance to thank you, brother, but I do thank you now.”
“I fear the getting you out of trouble didn’t last the night,” said Cadfael
ruefully, looking this lanky youngster over with a sharp eye, and approving
what he saw. Whether it was time spent in self-examination in the gaol, or time
spent more salutarily still in thinking of Emma, Philip had done a great deal
of growing up in a very short time. “I’m glad to see you about again among us,
and none the worse.”
“I’m not clear of the load yet,” said Philip. “The charge
still stands, even the charge of murder has not been withdrawn.”
“Then it stands upon one leg only,” said Cadfael heartily, “and may fall at
any moment. Have you not heard there’s been another death?”
“So they told me, and other violence, also. But surely this last bears no
connection with the rest? Until this, all was malice against Master Thomas.
This man was a stranger, and from Chester.” He laid a hand eagerly on Cadfael’s
sleeve. “Brother, spare me some minutes. I was not very clear in my wits that
night, now I need to know—all that I did, all that was done to me. I want to
trace every minute of an evening I can barely piece together for myself.”
“And no wonder, after that knock on the head. Come and sit in the garden,
it’s quiet there.” He took the young man by the arm, and turned him towards the
archway through the pleached hedge, and sat him down on the very seat, had
Philip known it, where Emma and Ivo had sat together the previous day. “Now,
what is it you have in mind? I don’t wonder your memory’s hazy. That’s a good
solid skull you have on you, and a blessedly thick thatch of hair, or you’d
have been carried away on a board.”
Philip scowled doubtfully into distance between the roses, hesitated how
much to say, how much to keep painfully to himself, caught Brother Cadfael’s
comfortably patient eye, and blurted: “I was coming now from Emma. I know she
is in better care than I could provide her, but I have found one thing, at
least, that might still be done for her. She wants and needs to see the man who
killed her uncle brought to justice. And I mean to find him.”
“So does the sheriff, so do all his men,” said Cadfael, “but they’ve had
little success as yet.” But he did not say it in reproof or discouragement, but
very thoughtfully. “So, for that matter, do I, but I’ve done no better. One
more mind probing the matter could just as well be the mind that uncovers the
truth. Why not? But how will you set about it?”
“Why, if I can prove—prove!—that I did not do it, I may also rub up
against something that will lead me to the man who did. At least I can make a
start by trying to follow what happened to me that night. Not only for my own
defence,” he said earnestly, “but because it seems to me that I gave cover to the deed by what I had begun, and whoever did it may have
had me and my quarrel in mind, and been glad of the opening I made for him,
knowing that when murder came of the night, the first name that would spring to
mind would be mine. So whoever he may be, he must have marked my comings and
goings, or I could be no use to him. If I had been with ten friends throughout,
I should have been out of the reckoning, and the sheriff would have begun at
once to look elsewhere. But I was drunk, and sick, and took myself off alone to
the river for a long time, so much I do know. Long enough for it to have been
true. And the murderer knew it.”
“That is sound thinking,” agreed Cadfael approvingly. “What, then, do you
mean to do?”
“Begin from the riverside, where I got my clout on the head, and follow my
own scent until I get clear what’s very unclear now. I do remember what
happened there, as far as you hauling me out of the way of the sheriff’s men,
and then being hustled away between two others, but my legs were grass and my
wits were muddied, and I can’t for my life recall who they were. It’s a place
to start, if you knew them.”
“One of them was Edric Flesher’s journeyman,” said Cadfael. “The other I’ve
seen, though I don’t know his name, a big, sturdy young fellow twice your
width, with tow-coloured hair… ”
“John Norreys!” Philip snapped his fingers. “I seem to recall him later in
the night. It’s enough, I’ll begin with them, and find out where they left me,
and how—or where I shook them off, for so I might have done, I was no fit
company for Christians.” He rose, draping his coat over one shoulder. “That whole
evening I’ll unravel, if I can.”
“Good lad!” said Cadfael heartily. “I wish you success with all my heart.
And if you’re going to be threading your way through a few of the ale-houses of
the Foregate, as you seem to have done that night, keep your eyes open on my
behalf, will you? If you can find your murderer, you may very well also be
finding mine.” Carefully and emphatically he told him what to look for. “An arm
raising a flagon, or spread over a table, may show you what I’m seeking. The
left sleeve sliced open for a hand’s-length from the cuff of a russet-brown
coat, that was sewn with a lighter linen thread. It would be on
the underside of the arm. Or where arms are bared, look for the long scratch
the knife made when it slit the sleeve, or for the binding that might cover it
if it still bleeds. But if you find him, don’t challenge him or say word to
him, only bring me, if you can, his name and where to find him again.”
“This was the glover’s slayer?” asked Philip, marking the details with grave
nods of his brown head. “You think they may be one and the same?”
“If not the same, well known to each other, and both in the same conspiracy.
Find one, and we shall be very close to the other.”
“I’ll keep a good watch, at any rate,” said Philip, and strode away purposefully
towards the gatehouse to begin his quest.
Chapter Three
Afterwards Brother Cadfael pondered many times over what followed, and
wondered if prayer can even have a retrospective effect upon events, as well as
influencing the future. What had happened had already happened, yet would he
have found the same situation if he had not gone straight into the church, when
Philip left him, with the passionate urge to commit to prayer the direction of
his own efforts, which seemed to him so barren? It was a most delicate and
complex theological problem, never as far as he knew, raised before, or if
raised, no theologian had ventured to write on the subject, probably for fear
of being accused of heresy.
Howbeit, the urgent need came over him, since he had lost some offices
during the day, to recommit his own baffled endeavours to eyes that saw
everything, and a power that could open all doors. He chose the transept chapel
from which Master Thomas’s coffin had been carried that morning, resealed into
sanctity by the Mass sung for him. He had time, now, to kneel and wait, having
busied himself thus far in anxious efforts like a man struggling up a mountain,
when he knew there was a force that could make the mountain bow. He said a
prayer for patience and humility, and then laid that by, and prayed for Emma,
for the soul of Master Thomas, for the child that should be born to Aline and
Hugh, for young Philip and the parents who had recovered him, for all who
suffered injustice and wrong, and sometimes forgot they had a resource beyond
the sheriff.
Then it was high time for him to rise from his knees, and go
and see to his primary duty here, whatever more violent matters clamoured for
his attention. He had supervised the herbarium and the manufactory derived from
it, for sixteen years, and his remedies were relied upon far beyond the abbey
walls; and though Brother Mark was the most devoted and uncomplaining of
helpers, it was unkind to leave him too long alone with such a responsibility.
Cadfael hastened towards his workshop with a lightened heart, having shifted
his worries to broader shoulders, just as Brother Mark would be happy to do on
his patron’s arrival.
The heavy fragrance of the herb-garden lay over all the surrounding land,
after so many hours of sunshine and heat, like a particular benediction meant
for the senses, not the soul. Under the eaves of the workshop the dangling
bunches of dried leafage rustled and chirped like nests of singing birds in
waves of warmed air, where there was hardly any wind. The very timbers of the
hut, dressed with oil against cracking, breathed out scented warmth.
“I finished making the balm for ulcers,” said Brother Mark, making dutiful
report, and happily aware of work well done. “And I have harvested all the
poppy-heads that were ripe, but I have not yet broken out the seed, I thought
they should dry in the sun a day or two yet.”
Cadfael pressed one of the great heads between his fingers, and praised the
judgment. “And the angelica water for the infirmary?”
“Brother Edmund sent for it half an hour ago. I had it ready. And I had a
patient,” said Brother Mark, busy stacking away on a shelf the small clay
dishes he used for sorting seeds, “earlier on, soon after dinner. A groom with
a gashed arm. He said he did it on a nail in the stables, reaching down
harness, though it looked like a knife-slash to me. It was none too clean, I
cleansed it for him, and dressed it with some of your goose-grass unguent. They
were gambling with dice up there in the loft last night, I daresay it came to a
fight, and somebody drew on him. He’d hardly admit to that.” Brother Mark
dusted his hands, and turned with a smile to report for the sum of his
stewardship. “And that’s all. A quiet afternoon, you need not have worried.” At
sight of Cadfael’s face his brows went up comically, and he asked in surprise:
“Why are you staring like that? Nothing there, surely, to open
your eyes so wide.”
My mouth, too, thought Cadfael, and shut it while he reflected on the
strangeness of human effort, and the sudden rewards that fell undeserved. Not
undeserved, perhaps, in this case, since this had fallen to Brother Mark, who
modestly made no demands at all.
“Which arm was gashed?” he asked, further baffling Brother Mark, who
naturally could not imagine why that should matter.
“The left. From here, the outer edge of the wrist, down the underside of the
forearm. Almost to the elbow. Why?”
“Had he his coat on?”
“Not when I saw him,” said Mark, smiling at the absurdity of this catechism.
“But he had it over his sound arm. Is that important?”
“More than you know! But you shall know, later, I am not playing with you.
Of what colour was it? And did you see the sleeve that should cover that arm?”
“I did. I offered to stitch it for him—I had little to do just then. But he
said he’d already cobbled it up, and so he had, very roughly, and with black
thread. I could have done better for him, the original was unbleached linen
thread. The colour? Reddish dun, much like most of the grooms and men-at-arms
wear, but a good cloth.”
“Did you know the man? Not one of our own abbey servants?”
“No, a guest’s man,” said Brother Mark, patient in his bewilderment. “Not a
word to his lord he said! It was one of Ivo Corbière’s grooms, the older one,
the surly fellow with the beard.”
Gilbert Prestcote himself, unescorted and on foot, had taken an afternoon
turn about the fairground to view the public peace with his own eyes, and was
in the great court on his way back to the town, conferring with Hugh Beringar,
when Cadfael came in haste from the garden with his news. When the blunt
recital was ended, they looked at him and at each other with blank and wary
faces.
“Corbière’s within at this moment,” said Hugh, “and I gather
from Aline has been, more than an hour. Emma has him dazed, I doubt if he’s had
any other thought, these last two days. His men have been running loose much as
they pleased, provided the work was done. It could be the man.”
“His lord has the right to be told,” said Prestcote. “Households grow lax
when they see the country torn, and their betters flouting law. There’s nothing
been said or done to alarm this fellow, I take it? He has no reason to make any
move? And surely he values the shelter of a name like Corbière.”
“No word has been said to any but you,” said Cadfael. “And the man may be
telling the truth.”
“The tatter of cloth,” said Hugh, “I have here on me. It should be possible
to match or discard.”
“Ask Corbière to come,” said the sheriff.
Hugh took the errand to himself, since Ivo was a guest in his rooms. While they
waited in braced silence, two of the abbey’s men-at-arms came in at the
gatehouse with unstrung longbows, and Turstan Fowler between them with his
arbalest, the three of them hot, happy and on excellent terms. On the last day
of the fair there were normally matches of many kinds, wrestling, shooting at
the butts along the river meadows, long-bow against cross-bow, though the
long-bow here was usually the short bow of Wales, drawn to the breast, not the
ear. The six-foot weapon was known, but a rarity. There were races, too, and
riding at the quintain on the castle tiltyard. Trade and play made good
companions, and especially good profits for the ale-houses, where the winners
very soon parted with all they had won, and the losers made up their losses.
These three were wreathed together in argumentative amity, passing jokes
along the line; each seemed to be vaunting his own weapon. They had strolled no
more than halfway across the court when Hugh emerged from the guest-hall with
Ivo beside him. Ivo saw his archer crossing towards the stable-yard, and made
him an imperious signal to stay.
There was no fault to be found with Turstan’s service since his disastrous
fall from grace on the first evening; motioned to hold aloof but remain at
call, he obeyed without question, and went on amusing himself with his rivals.
He must have done well at the butts for they seemed to be discussing his
arbalest, and he braced a foot in the metal stirrup and drew the
string to the alert for them, demonstrating that he lost little in speed
against their instant arms. No doubt the dispute between speed and range would
go on as long as both arms survived. Cadfael had handled both in his time, as
well as the eastern bow, the sword, and the lance of the mounted man. Even at
this grave moment he spared a long glance for the amicable wrangle going on a
score of paces away.
Then Ivo was there among them, and shaken out of his easy confidence and
grace. His face was tense, his dark eyes large and wondering under the proudly
raised auburn brows and golden cap of curls. “You wanted me, sir? Hugh has not
been specific, but I took it this was urgent matter.”
“It is a matter of a man of yours,” said the sheriff.
“My men?” He shook a doubtful head, and gnawed his lip. “I know of nothing…
Not since Turstan drank himself stiff and stupid, and he’s been a penitent and
close to home ever since, and he did no harm then to any but himself, the dolt.
But they all have leave to go forth, once their work’s done. The fair is every
man’s treat. What’s amiss concerning my men?”
It was left to the sheriff to tell him. Ivo paled visibly as he listened,
his ruddy sunburn sallowing. “Then my man is suspect of the killing I brushed
arms with—Good God, this very morning! That you may know, his name is Ewald, he
comes from a Cheshire manor, and his ancestry is northern, but he never showed
ill traits before, though he is a morose man, and makes few friends. I take
this hard. I brought him here.”
“You may resolve it,” said Prestcote.
“So I may.” His mouth tightened. “And will! About this hour I appointed to
ride, my horse has had little exercise here, and he’ll be bearing me hence
tomorrow. Ewald is the groom who takes care of him. He should be saddling him
up in the stables about this time. Shall I send for him? He’ll be expecting my
summons. No!” he interrupted his own offer, his brows contracting. “Not send
for him, go for him myself. If I sent Turstan, there, you might suspect that a
servant would stand by a servant, and give him due warning. Do you think he has
not been watching us, this short while? And do you think this colloquy has the
look of simple talk among us?”
Assuredly it had not. Turstan, dangling his braced bow, had
lost interest in enlightening his rivals, and they, sensing that there was
something afoot that did not concern them, were drawing off and moving away,
though with discreet backward glances until they vanished into the grange
court.
“I’ll go myself,” said Ivo, and strode away towards the stable-yard at a
great pace. Turstan, hesitant, let him pass, since he got no word out of him in
passing, but then turned and hurried on his heels, anxiously questioning. For a
little way he followed, and they saw Ivo turn his head and snap some hasty
orders at his man. Chastened, Turstan drew back and returned towards the
gatehouse, and stood at a loss.
Some minutes passed before they heard the sharp sound of hooves on the
cobbles of the stable-yard, brittle and lively. Then the tall, dusky bay,
glowing like the darkest of copper and restive for want of work, danced out of
the yard with the stocky, bearded groom holding his bridle, and Ivo stalking a
yard or so ahead.
“Here is my man Ewald,” he said shortly, and stood back, as Cadfael noted,
between them and the open gateway. Turstan Fowler drew nearer by discreet
inches, and silently, sharp eyes flicking from one face to another in quest of
understanding. Ewald stood holding the bridle, uneasy eyes narrowed upon
Prestcote’s unrevealing countenance. When the horse, eager for action, stirred
and tossed his head, the groom reached his left hand across to take the bridle,
and slid the right one up to the glossy neck, caressing by rote, but without
for an instant shifting his gaze.
“My lord says your honour has something to ask me,” he said in a slow and
grudging voice.
Under his left forearm the cobbled mend in his sleeve showed plainly, the
cloth puckered between large stitches, and the end of linen thread shivered in
sun and breeze like a gnat dancing.
“Take off your coat,” ordered the sheriff. And as the man gaped in real or
pretended bewilderment: “No words! Do it!”
Slowly Ewald slipped out of his coat, somewhat awkwardly because he was at
pains to retain his hold on the bridle. The horse had been promised air and
exercise, and was straining towards the gate, the way to what he desired. He
had already shifted the whole group, except Cadfael, who stood mute and apart,
a little nearer the gate.
“Turn back your sleeve. The left.”
He gave one wild glance round, then lowered his head like a bull, set his
jaw, and did it, his right arm through the bridle as he turned up the coarse
homespun to the elbow. Brother Mark had bound up the gash in a strip of clean
linen over his dressing. The very cleanness of it glared.
“You have hurt yourself, Ewald?” said Prestcote, quietly grim.
He has his chance now, thought Cadfael, if he has quick enough wit, to
change his story and say outright that he took a knife-wound in a common brawl,
and told Brother Mark the lie about a nail simply to cover up the folly. But
no, the man did not stop to think; he had his story, and trusted it might still
cover him. Yet if Mark, on handling the wound, could tell a cut from a tear, so
at the merest glance could Gilbert Prescote.
“I did it on a nail in the stables, my lord, reaching down harness.”
“And tore your sleeve through at the same time? It was a jagged nail, Ewald.
That’s stout cloth you wear.” He turned abruptly to Hugh Beringar. “You have
the slip of cloth?”
Hugh drew out from his pouch a folded piece of vellum, and opened it upon
the insignificant strip of fabric, that looked like nothing so much as a blade
of dried grass fretted into fibres and rotting at the edge. Only the wavy
tendril of linen thread showed what it really was, but that was enough. Ewald
drew away a pace, so sharply that the horse backed off some yards towards the
gateway, and the groom turned and took both hands to hold and soothe the beast.
Ivo had to spring hurriedly backwards to avoid the dancing hooves.
“Hand here your coat,” ordered Prestcote, when the bay was appeased again,
and willing to stand, though reluctantly.
The groom looked from the tiny thing he had recognised to the sheriff’s
composed but unrelenting face, hesitated only a moment, and then did as he was
bid, to violent effect. He swung back his arm and flung the heavy cotte into
their faces, and with a leap was over the bay’s back and into the saddle. Both
heels drove into the glossy sides, and a great shout above the pricked ears
sent the horse surging like a flung lance for the gateway.
There was no one between but Ivo. The groom drove the bay
straight at him, headlong. The young man leaped aside, but made a tigerish
spring to grasp at the bridle as the horse hurtled by, and actually got a hold
on it and was dragged for a moment, until the groom kicked out at him
viciously, breaking the tenuous hold and hurling Ivo out of the way, to fall
heavily and roll under the feet of the sheriff and Hugh as they launched
themselves after the fugitive. Out at the gateway and round to the right into
the Foregate went Ewald, at a frantic gallop, and there was no one mounted and
ready to pursue, and for once the sheriff was without escort or archers.
But Ivo Corbière was not. Turstan Fowler had rushed to help him to his feet,
but Ivo waved him past, out into the Foregate, and heaving himself breathlessly
from the ground, with grazed and furious face ran limping after. The little
group of them stood in the middle of the highroad, helplessly watching the bay
and his rider recede into distance, and unable to follow. He had killed, and he
would get clear away, and once some miles from Shrewsbury, he could disappear
into forest and lie safe as a fox in its lair.
In a voice half-choked with rage, Ivo cried: “Fetch him down!”
Turstan’s arbalest was still braced and ready, and Turstan was used to
jumping to his command. The quarrel was out of his belt, fitted and loosed, in
an instant, the thrum and vibration of its flight made heads turn and duck and
women shriek along the Foregate.
Ewald, stooped low over the horse’s neck, suddenly jerked violently and
reared up with head flung high. His hands slackened from the reins and his arms
swung lax on either side. He seemed to hang for a moment suspended in air, and
then swung heavily sidewise, and heeled slowly out of the saddle. The bay,
startled and shocked, ran on wildly, scattering the frightened vendors and
buyers on both sides, but his flight was uncertain now, and confused by this
sudden lightness. He would not go far. Someone would halt and soothe him, and
lead him back.
As for the groom Ewald, he was dead before ever the first of the appalled
stallholders reached him, dead, probably, before ever he struck the ground.
Chapter Four
“He was my villein,” asserted Ivo strenuously, in the room in the gatehouse
where they had brought and laid the body, “and I enjoy the power of the high
justice over my own, and this one had forfeited life. I need make no defence,
for myself or my archer, who did nothing more than obey my order. We have all
seen, now, that this fellow’s wound is no tear from a nail, but the stroke of a
dagger, and the fret you took from the glover’s blade matches this sleeve past
question. Is there doubt in any mind that this was a murderer?”
There was none. Cadfael was there with them in the room, at Hugh’s instance,
and he had no doubts at all. This was the man Euan of Shotwick had marked,
before he himself died. Moreover, some of Euan of Shotwick’s goods and money
had been found among the sparse belongings Ewald had left behind him; his
saddle-roll held a pouch of fine leather full of coins, and two pairs of gloves
made for the hands of girls, presents, perhaps, for wife or sister. This was
certainly a murderer. Turstan, who had shot him down, obviously did not
consider himself anything of the kind, any more than one of Prestcote’s archers
would have done, had he been given the order to shoot. Turstan had taken the
whole affair stolidly, as none of his business apart from his duty to his lord,
and gone away to his evening meal with an equable appetite.
“I brought him here,” said Ivo bitterly, wiping smears of blood from his
grazed cheek. “It is my honour he has offended, as well as the
law of the land. I had a right to avenge myself.”
“No need to labour it,” said Prestcote shortly. “The shire has been saved a
trial and a hanging, which is to the good, and I don’t know but the wretch
himself might prefer this way out. It was a doughty shot, and that’s a valuable
man of yours. I never thought it could be done so accurately at that distance.”
Ivo shrugged. “I knew Turstan’s quality, or I would not have said what I
did, to risk either my horse or any of the hundreds about their harmless
business in the Foregate. I don’t know that I expected a death… ”
“There’s only one cause for regret,” said the sheriff. “If he had
accomplices, he can never now be made to name them. And you say, Beringar, that
there were probably two?”
“You’re satisfied, I hope,” said Ivo, “that neither Turstan nor my young
groom Arald had any part with him in these thefts?”
Both had been questioned, he had insisted on that. Turstan had been a model
of virtue since his one lapse, and the youngster was a fresh-faced country
youth, and both had made friends among the other servants and were well liked.
Ewald had been morose and taciturn, and kept himself apart, and the revelation
of his villainy did not greatly surprise his fellows.
“There’s still the matter of the other offences. What do you think? Was it
this man in all of them?”
“I cannot get it out of my mind,” said Hugh slowly, “that Master Thomas’s
death was the work of one man only. And without reason or proof, by mere
pricking of thumbs, I do not believe it was this man. For the rest—I don’t
know! Two, the merchant’s watchman said, but I am not sure he may not be
increasing the odds to excuse his own want of valour—or his very good sense,
however you look at it. Only one, surely, would enter the barge in full
daylight, no doubt briskly, as if he had an errand there, something to fetch or
something to bestow. Where there were two, this must surely be one of them. Who
the other was, we are still in the dark.”
After Compline Cadfael went to report to Abbot Radulfus all that had
happened. The sheriff had already paid the necessary courtesy
visit to inform the abbot, but for all that Radulfus would expect his own accredited
observer to bring another viewpoint, one more concerned with the repute and the
standards of a Benedictine house. In an order which held moderation in all
things to be the ground of blessing, immoderate things were happening.
Radulfus listened in disciplined silence to all, and there was no telling
from his face whether he deplored or approved such summary justice.
“Violence can never be anything but ugly,” he said thoughtfully, “but we
live in a world as ugly and violent as it is beautiful and good. Two things
above all concern me, and one of them may seem to you, brother, a trivial
matter. This death, the shedding of this blood, took place outside our walls.
For that I am grateful. You have lived both within and without, what must be
accepted and borne is the same to you, within or without. But many here lack
your knowledge, and for them, and for the peace we strive to preserve here as
refuge for others beside ourselves, the sanctity of this place is better
unspotted. And the second thing will matter as deeply to you as to me: Was this
man guilty? Is it certain he himself had killed?”
“It is certain,” said Brother Cadfael, choosing his words with care, “that
he had been concerned in murder, most likely with at least one other man.”
“Then harsh though it may be, this was justice.” He caught the heaviness of
Cadfael’s silence, and looked up sharply. “You are not satisfied?”
“That the man took part in murder, yes, I am satisfied. The proofs are
clear. But what is justice? If there were two, and one bears all, and the other
goes free, is that justice? I am certain in my soul that there is more, not yet
known.”
“And tomorrow all these people will depart about their own affairs, to their
own homes and shops, wherever they may be. The guilty and the innocent alike.
That cannot be the will of God,” said the abbot, and brooded a while in
silence. “Nevertheless, it may be God’s will that it should be taken out of our
hands. Continue your vigil, brother, through the morrow. After that others,
elsewhere, must take up the burden.”
Brother Mark sat on the edge of his cot, in his cell in the
dortoire, with his elbows on his knees and his head in his hands, and grieved.
From a child he had lived a hard life, privation, brutality and pain were all
known to him as close companions until he came into this retreat, at first
unwilling. But death was too monstrous and too dark for him, coming thus
instant in terror, and without the possibility of grace. To live misused,
ill-fed, without respite from labour, was still life, with a sky above it, and
trees and flowers and birds around it, colour and season and beauty. Life, even
so lived, was a friend. Death was a stranger.
“Child, it is with us always,” said Cadfael, patient beside him. “Last
summer ninety-five men died here in the town, none of whom had done murder. For
choosing the wrong side, they died. It falls upon blameless women in war, even
in peace at the hands of evil men. It falls upon children who never did harm to
any, upon old men, who in their lives have done good to many, and yet are
brutally and senselessly slain. Never let it shake your faith that there is a
balance hereafter. What you see is only a broken piece from a perfect whole.”
“I know,” said Brother Mark between his fingers, loyal but uncomforted. “But
to be cut off without trial… ”
“So were the ninety-four last year,” said Cadfael gently, “and the
ninety-fifth was murdered. Such justice as we see is also but a broken shred.
But it is our duty to preserve what we may, and fit together such fragments as
we find, and take the rest on trust.”
“And unshriven!” cried Brother Mark.
“So went his victim also. And he had neither robbed nor killed, or if he
had, only God knows of it. There has many a man gone through that gate without
a safe-conduct, who will reach heaven ahead of some who were escorted through
with absolution and ceremony, and had their affairs in order. Kings and princes
of the church may find shepherds and serfs preferred before them, and some who
claim they have done great good may have to give place to poor wretches who
have done wrong and acknowledge it, and have tried to make amends.”
Brother Mark sat listening, and at least began to hear. Humbly he recognised
and admitted the real heart of his grievance. “I had his arm between my hands,
I saw him wince when I cleansed his wound, and I felt his pain.
It was only a small pain, but I felt it. I was glad to help him, it was
pleasure to anoint the cut with balm, and wrap it clean, and know he was eased.
And now he’s dead, with a cross-bow bolt through him… ” Briefly and angrily,
Brother Mark brushed away tears, and uncovered his accusing face. “What is the
use of mending a man, if he’s to be broken within a few hours, past mending?”
“We were speaking of souls,” said Cadfael mildly, “not mere bodies, and who
knows but your touch with ointment and linen may have mended to better effect
the one that lasts the longer? There’s no arrow cleaves the soul but there may
be balm for it.”
Chapter Five
Head-down on his own traces, Philip had run his friend John Norreys to earth
at last at the butts by the riverside, where the budding archers of the town
practised, and together they hunted out Edric Flesher’s young journeyman from
the yard behind his master’s shop. Philip’s odyssey on the eve of the fair had
begun with these two, who had had him bundled into their arms by Brother
Cadfael when the sheriff’s men descended on the Gaye.
By their own account, they had hauled him away through the orchards and the
narrow lanes behind the Foregate, avoiding the highroads, and sat him down in
the first booth that sold drink, to recover his addled wits. And very
ungrateful they had found him, as soon as the shock of his blow on the head
began to pass, and his legs were less shaky under him.
Furious with himself, he had turned his ill-temper on them, snarled at them,
said John tolerantly, that he was capable of looking after himself, and they
had better go and warn some of the other stalwarts who had rushed on along the
Foregate overturning stalls and scattering goods, before the officers reached
them. Which they had taken good-humouredly enough, knowing his head was aching
villainously by that time, and had followed him for a while at a discreet
distance as he blundered away through the fair-ground, until he turned on them
again and ordered them away. They had stood to watch him, and then shrugged and
left him to his own devices, since he would have none of them.
“You had your legs again,” said John reasonably, “and since
you wouldn’t let us do anything for you, we thought best to let you go your own
way. Let alone, you wouldn’t go far, but if we followed, you might do who knows
what, out of contrariness.”
“There was another fellow who looked after you a thought anxiously,” said
the butcher’s man, thinking back, “when we left that booth with you. Came out
after us, and set off the same way you took. He thought you were already
helpless drunk, I fancy, and might need helping home.”
“That was kind in him,” said Philip, stiffening indignantly, and meaning
that it was damned officious of whoever it was. “That would be what hour? Not
yet eight?”
“Barely. I did hear the bell for Compline shortly after, over the wall.
Curious how it carries over all the bustle between.” In the upper air, so it
would; people in the Foregate regulated their day by the office bells.
“Who was this who followed me? Did you know him?”
They looked at each other and hoisted indifferent shoulders; among the
thousands at a great fair the local people are lost. “Never seen him before.
Not a Shrewsbury man. He may not have been following, to call it that, at all,
just heading the same way.”
They told him exactly where he had left them, and the direction he had
taken. Philip made his way purposefully to the spot indicated, but in that busy
concourse, spreading along the Foregate and filling every open space beyond, he
was still without a map. All he knew was that before nine, according to the
witness in the sheriff’s court, he had been very drunk and still drinking in
Wat’s tavern, and blurting out hatred and grievance and the intent of vengeance
against Master Thomas of Bristol. The interval it was hard to fill. Perhaps he
had made his way there at once, and been well advanced in drink before the
stranger noted his threats.
Philip gritted his teeth and set off along the Foregate, so intent on his
own quest that he had no ears for anything else, and missed the news that was
being busily conveyed back and forth through the fair, with imaginative
variations and considerable embellishments before it reached the far corner of
the horse-fair. It was news more than two hours old by then, but Philip had
heard no word of it, his mind was on his own problem. All round
him stalls were being stripped down to trestle and board, and rented booths
being locked up, and the keys delivered to abbey stewards. Business was almost
put away, but the evening was not yet outworn, there would be pleasure after
business.
Walter Renold’s inn lay at the far corner of the horse-fair, not on the
London highroad, but on the quieter road that bore away north-eastwards. It was
handy for the country people who brought goods to market, and at this hour it
was full. It went against the grain with Philip even to order a pot of ale for
himself while he was on this desperate quest, but alehouses live by sales, and
at least he was so formidably sober now that he could afford the indulgence.
The potboy who brought him his drink was hardly more than a child, and he did
not remember the tow hair and pock-marked face. He waited to speak with Wat
himself, when there was a brief interlude of calm.
“I heard they’d let you go free,” said Wat, spreading brawny arms along the
table opposite him. “I’m glad of it. I never thought you’d do harm, and so I
told them where they asked. When was it they loosed you?”
“A while before noon.” Hugh Beringar had said he should eat his dinner at
home, and so he had, though at a later hour than usual.
“So nobody could point a finger at you over the latest ill-doings. Such a
fair as we’ve had! Good weather and good sales, and good attendance all round,
even good behaviour,” said Wat weightily, considering the whole range of his
experience of fairs. “And yet two merchants murdered, the second of them a
northern man found only this morning broken-necked in his stall. You’ll have
heard about that? When did we ever have such happenings! It’s not the lads of
Shrewsbury, I said when they asked me, that get up to such villainies, you look
among the incomers from other parts. We’re decent folk herebouts!”
“Yes, I know of that,” said Philip. “But it’s not that death they pointed at
me, it’s the first, the Bristol merchant… ” North and south had met here, he
reflected, fatally for both. Now why should that be? Both the victims strangers
from far distances, where some born locally were as well worth plundering.
“This one they could hardly charge to your account,” said
Wat, grinning broadly, “even if you’d been at large so early. It’s all past and
gone. You hadn’t heard? There was a grand to-do along the Foregate, a few hours
ago. The murderer’s found out red-handed, and made a break for his freedom on
his lord’s horse, and kicked his lord into the dust on the way. And he’s shot
down dead as a storm-struck tree, at his lord’s orders. A master’s shot, they
say. The glover’s soon avenged. And you’d not heard of it?”
“Not a word! The last I heard they were looking for a man who might have a
slit sleeve to show, and a gash in his arm. When was this, then?” It seemed
that Brother Cadfael must have found his man, unaided, after all.
“Not an hour before Vespers it must have been. All I heard was the shouting
at the abbey end of the Foregate. But they tell me the sheriff himself was
there.”
About five in the afternoon, perhaps less than an hour after Philip had left
Brother Cadfael and gone back into the town to look for John Norreys. A short
hunt that had been, no need any longer for him to cast a narrowed eye at men’s
sleeves wherever he went. “And it’s certain they got the right man?”
“Certain! The merchant had marked him, and they say there were goods and
money from the glover’s stall found in his pack. Some groom called Ewald, I
heard… ”
A mere sneak-thief, then, who had gone too far. Nothing there to bear on
Philip’s own quest. He was free to concentrate his mind once again, and even
more intently, upon his own pilgrimage. It had begun as a penitential exercise,
but was gradually abandoning that aspect. Certainly he had made a fool of
himself, but the original impulse on which he had acted, and roused others to act,
had not been so foolish, after all, and was nothing to be ashamed of. Only when
it collapsed about him in ruins had he thrown good sense to the winds, and
indulged his misery like a sulking child.
“Now if only I could find out as certainly who it was did for Master Thomas!
It was that night there was grave matter urged against me, and I will own I
laid myself open. It’s all very well being let out on my father’s bail, but no
one has yet said I’m clear of the charge. The rest I’ll pay my score for, but I
want to prove I never did the merchant any violence. I know I was here that
night—the eve of the fair, you’ll remember? From what hour?
I’ve no recollection of times, myself. According to his men, Master Thomas was
alive until a third of the hour past nine.”
“Oh, you were here, no question!” Wat could not help grinning at the memory.
“There was noise enough, we were busy, but you made yourself heard! No offence,
lad, who hasn’t made a fool of himself in his cups from time to time? It can’t
have been more than a quarter after eight when you came in, and I doubt you’d
had much, up to then.”
Only a quarter after the hour of Compline—then he must have come straight
here after shaking off his friends. Not straight, perhaps that was an
inappropriate word, but weavingly and unsteadily, though at that rate not
calling anywhere else on the way. It was a natural thing to do, to hurry clean
through the thick of the fair, and put as much ground as possible between
himself and his solicitous companions before calling a halt.
“I tell you what, boy,” said the expert kindly, “if you’d taken it slowly
you’d have been sober enough. But you had to rush the matter. I doubt I’ve ever
seen a fellow put so much down in the time, no wonder your belly turned against
it.”
It was not cheering listening, but Philip swallowed it doggedly. Evidently
he had been as foolish as he had been dreading, and the archer’s account of his
behaviour had not been at all exaggerated.
“And was I yelling vengeance against the man who struck me? That’s what they
said of me.”
“Well, now, I wouldn’t go so far as that, and yet it’s not too far off the
mark, either. Let’s say you were not greatly loving him, and no wonder, we
could all see the dunt he’d given you. Arrogant and greedy you called him, and
a few other things I don’t recall, and mark your words, you kept telling us,
pride like his was due for a disastrous fall, and soon. That must be what they
had in mind who witnessed against you. I never heard word of any going to this
hearing from my tavern, not until afterwards. Who were they that testified,
then?”
“It was one man,” said Philip. “Not that I can blame him, it seems he told
no lies—indeed, I never thought he had, I know I was the world’s fool that
night.”
“Why, bless you, lad, with a cracked head a man’s liable to act like one
cracked, he has the right. But who’s this one man? What with
all the incomers at the fair, I had more strangers than known customers of
these evenings.”
“It was a man attending one of the abbey guests,” said Philip. “Turstan Fowler,
they said his name was. He said he was here drinking, and went from ale to
wine, and then to strong liquor—it seems he ended up as drunk as I was myself,
they took him up helpless later, and slung him into a cell at the abbey
overnight. A well-set-up fellow, but slouching and unkempt when I saw him in
the court. About thirty-five years old, at a guess, sunburned, a bush of brown
hair… ”
Wat shook his head, pondering the description. “I don’t know him, not by
that, though I’ve got a rare memory for faces. An ale-house keeper has to have.
Ah, well, if he’s a stranger he’d no call to give false witness, I suppose he
was but honest, and put the worst meaning on your bletherings for want of
knowing you.”
“What time was it when I left here?” Philip winced ever at the recollection
of the departure, sudden and desperate, with churning stomach and swimming
head, and both hands clamped hard over his grimly locked jaw. Barely time to
weave a frantic way across the road and into the edge of the copse beyond, where
he had heaved his heart out, and then blundered some distance further in cover
towards the orchards of the Gaye, and collapsed shivering and retching into the
grass, to pass into a sodden sleep. He had not dragged himself out of it until
the small hours.
“Why, reckoning from Compline, I’d say an hour had passed, it would be about
nine of the clock.”
Thomas of Bristol had set out from his booth to return to his barge only a
quarter of an hour or so later. And someone, someone unknown, had intercepted
him on the way, dagger in hand. No wonder the law had looked so narrowly at
Philip Corviser, who had reason to resent and hate, and had blundered out of
sight and sound of other men around that time, after venting his grievance
aloud for all to hear.
Wat rose to go and cope with the custom that was overwhelming his two
potboys, and Philip sat brooding with his chin on his fist. Most of the flares
must be out by now along the Foregate, most of the stalls packed up and ready
for departure. Another balmy summer night, heaven dropping fat blessings on the
abbey receipts and the profits of trade, after a lost summer of
warfare and a winter of uncertainty. And the town walls still unrepaired, and
the streets still broken!
The door stood propped wide on the warm, luminous twilight, and the traffic
in and out was brisk. Youngsters came with jugs and pitchers to fetch for their
elders, maids tripped in for a measure of wine for their masters, labourers and
abbey servants wandered in to slake their thirst between spells of work. Saint
Peter’s Fair was drawing to its contented and successful close.
Through the open door came a fresh-faced youngster in a fine leather jerkin,
and on his heels a sturdy, brown-faced man at least fifteen years older, in the
same good livery. It took Philip a long moment of staring to recognise Turstan
Fowler, sober, well-behaved, in good odour with his lord and all the world.
Still longer to cause him to reflect afresh how he himself must have looked,
drunk, if the difference could stretch so far. He watched the little potboy
serve them. Wat was busy with others, and the room was full. The end of the
fair was always a busy time. Another day, and these same hours would hang heavy
and dark.
Philip never quite knew why he turned his head away, and hoisted a wide
shoulder between himself and Ivo Corbière’s men. He had nothing against either
of them, but he did not want to be recognised and condoled with, or
congratulated on his release, or in any way, sympathetic or not, have public
attention called to him. He kept his shoulder hunched between, and was glad to
have the room so full of people, and most of them strangers.
“Fairs are good business,” remarked Wat, returning to his place and plumping
down on the bench with a sigh of pleasure, “but I wish we could spread them
round the rest of the year. My feet are growing no younger, and I’ve hardly
been off them an hour in all, the last three days. What was it we were saying?”
“I was trying to describe for you the fellow who reported me as threatening
revenge,” said Philip. “Cast a look over yonder now, and you’ll see the very
man. The two in leather who came in together—the elder of the two.”
Wat let his sharp eyes rove, and surveyed Turstan Fowler with apparent
disinterest, but very shrewdly. “Slouching and hangdog, was he? Smart as a new
coat now.” His gaze returned to Philip’s face. “That’s the man?
I remember him well enough. I seldom forget a man’s face, but his name
and condition I’ve no way of knowing.”
“He can’t have looked quite so trim that evening,” said Philip, “seeing he
owned to being well soused. He was lost to the world two hours later, by his
own tale.”
“And he said he got it all here?” Wat’s eyes had narrowed thoughtfully.
“So he said. ‘Where I got my skinful’ is what he said.”
“Well, let me tell you something interesting, friend… ” Wat leaned
confidentially across the table. “Now I see him, I know how I saw him the last
time, for if you’ll credit me, he looked much as he looks now. And what’s more,
now I know of the connection he had with you and your affairs, I can recall
small things that happened that night, things I never gave a thought to before,
and neither would you have done. He was in here twice that evening, or rather,
he was in the doorway once, before he came over the threshold later. In that
doorway he stood, and looked round him, a matter of ten minutes or so after you
came in. I made nothing of it that he gave you a measuring sort of look, for
well he might, you were in full cry then. But look at you he did, and weighed
you up, and went away again. And the next we saw of him, it might be half an
hour later, he came in and bought a measure of ale, and a big flask of strong
geneva liquor, and sat supping his ale quietly, and eyeing you from time to
time—as again well he might, it was about then you were greenish and going
suspicious quiet. But do you know when he drank up and left, Philip, lad? The
minute after you made for the door in a hurry. And his flask under his arm,
unopened. Drunk? Him? He was stone cold sober when he went out of here.”
“But he took the juniper liquor with him,” pointed out Philip, reasonably.
“He was drunk enough two hours later, there were several of them to swear to
that. They had to carry him back to the abbey on a trestle-board.”
“And how much of the juniper spirit did they find remaining? Did they ever
mention that? Did they find the flask at all?”
“I never heard mention of it,” owned Philip, startled and doubtful. “Brother
Cadfael was there, I could ask him. But why?”
Wat laid a kindly if patronising hand on his shoulder. “Lad,
it’s easy to see you never went beyond wine or ale, and if you’ll heed me
you’ll leave the strong stuff to strong stomachs. I said a large flask, and
large I meant. There was a quart of geneva spirits in that bottle! If any man
drank that dry in two hours, it wouldn’t be dead drunk they’d be carrying him
away, it would be plain dead. Or if he did live to tell of it, it wouldn’t be
the next day, nor for several after. Sober as the sheriff himself was that fellow
when he went out of here on your heels, and why he should want to lie about it
is more than I can say, but lie about it he did, it seems. Now you tell me why
a man should go to some pains to convict himself of a debauch he never even
had, and get himself slung into a cell for recompense. Unless,” added Wat,
considering the problem with lively interest, “it was to get himself out of
something worse.”
The elder potboy, a freckled lad born and bred in the Foregate, came by with
a cluster of empties in either hand, and paused to nudge Wat in the ribs with
an elbow, and lean to his ear.
“Do you know who you have there, master?” A jerk of his head indicated the
two in leather jerkins. “The young one’s fellow-groom to the one that got a
bolt through him along the Foregate a while ago. And the other—Will Wharton
just told me, and he was close by and saw it all!—that’s the fellow who loosed
the bolt! His comrade in the same price, mark! Should he be here and in such
spirits the same night? That’s a stronger stomach than mine. ‘Fetch him down!’
says the master, and down the fellow fetches him, sharp and cool. You’d have
thought his hand would have shook too much to get near the target, but
no!—thump between the shoulders and through to the breast, so Will says. And that’s
the very man that did it, supping ale like any Christian.”
They were both of them staring at him open-mouthed, and turned away only to
stare again, briefly and intently, at Turstan Fowler sitting at ease with his
tankard, sturdy legs splayed under the table. It had never even occurred to
Philip to ask in whose service the dead malefactor was employed, and perhaps
Wat would not have known the name if he had asked. He would have mentioned it
else.
“That’s the man? You’re sure?” pressed Philip.
“Will Wharton is sure, and he helped to pick up the poor
devil who was killed.”
“Turstan Fowler? The falconer to Ivo Corbière? And Corbière ordered him to
shoot?”
“The name I don’t know, for neither did Will. Some young lord at the abbey
guest-hall. Very handsome sprig, yellow-haired, Will says. Though it’s no great
blame to him for wanting a murderer and thief stopped in his tracks, granted,
and any road, the man had just stolen his horse, and kicked him off into the
dust when he tried to halt him. And I suppose when a lord orders, his man had
better jump to obey. Still, it’s a grim thing to work side by side with a man
maybe months and years, and then to be told, strike him dead! And to do it!”
And the potboy rolled up his eyes and loosed a long, soft whistle, and passed
on with his handful of tankards, leaving them so sunk in reconsideration that
neither of them had anything to say.
But there could not be anything in it of significance for him, surely?
Philip looked back briefly as he left the inn, and Turstan Fowler and the young
groom were sitting tranquilly with their ale, talking cheerfully with half a
dozen other sober drinkers around them. They had not noticed him, or if they
had, had not recognised him, and neither of them seemed to have anything of
grave moment on his mind. Strange, though, how this same man seemed to be
entangled in every untoward episode, never at the centre of things yet always
somewhere in view.
As for the matter of the flask of juniper spirits, what did it really
signify? The man had been picked up too drunk to talk, no one had looked round
for his bottle, it might well have been left lying, still more than half-full,
if the stuff was as potent as Wat said, and some scavenger by night might have
picked it up and rejoiced in his luck. There were a dozen ways of accounting
for the circumstances. And yet it was strange. Why should he have said he was
drunk before he left Wat’s inn, if he had really left it cold sober? More to
the point, why should he have left so promptly on Philip’s heels? Yet Wat was a
good observer.
The tiny discrepancies stuck like barbs in Philip’s mind. It was far too
late to trouble anyone else tonight, Compline was long over,
the monks of Shrewsbury, their guests, their servants, would all be in their
beds or preparing to go there, except for the few lay stewards who had almost
completed their labours, and would be glad enough to make a modestly festive
night of it. Moreover, his parents would be vexed that he had abandoned them
all the day and he could expect irate demands for explanations at home. He had
better make his way back.
All the same, he crossed the road and made for the copse, as on the night he
was repeating, and found some faint signs of his wallow still visible, dried
into the trampled grass. Then back towards the river, avoiding the streets,
keeping to the cover of woodland, and there was the sheltered hollow where he
had slept off the worst of his orgy, before gathering himself up stiffly and
hobbling back to the town. There was enough lambent starlight to see his way,
and show him the scuffled and flattened grasses.
But no, this was not the place! Here there was a faint, trodden path, and he
had certainly moved much deeper into the bushes and trees, down-river, hiding
even from the night. This glade looked very like the other, but it was not the
same. Yet someone or something, large as a man, had lain here, and not
peacefully. Surely more than one pair of feet had ploughed the turf. A pair of
opportunist lovers, enjoying one of the traditional pleasures of the fair? Or
another kind of struggle? No, hardly a struggle, though something had been
dragged downhill towards the river, which was just perceptible as a gleam
between the trees. There was a patch of bare soil, dry and pale as clay,
between the spreading roots of the birch tree against which he leaned, and
ribbons of dropped bark littered it. The largest of them showed curiously dark
instead of silvery, like the rest. He stooped and picked it up, and his
fingertips recoiled from the black, encrusted stain. In the grass, if he
searched by daylight, there might well be other such blots.
In looking for the place of his own humiliation, he had found something very
different, the place where Master Thomas had been killed. And below, from that
spur of grass standing well above the undermined bank, his body had been thrown
into the river.
After the Fair
Chapter One
Brother Cadfael came out from Prime, next morning, to find Philip hovering
anxiously in the great court, fidgeting from one foot to the other as if the
ground under him burned, and so intent and grim of face that there was no
doubting the urgency of what he had to impart. At sight of Cadfael he came
bounding alongside to lay a hand on his sleeve.
“Will you come with me to Hugh Beringar? You know him, he’ll listen if you
vouch for me. I didn’t know if he’d be stirring this early, so I waited for
you. I think I’ve found the place where Master Thomas was killed.”
It was certainly not what he had been looking for, and came as a total
irrelevance for a moment to Brother Cadfael, who checked and blinked at an
announcement so unexpected. “You’ve done what!”
“It’s true, I swear it! It was so late last night, I couldn’t pester anyone
with it then, and I’ve not been there by daylight—but someone bled there—someone
was dragged down to the water—”
“Come!” said Cadfael, recovering. “We’ll go together.” And he set out at a
brisk trot for the guest-hall, Philip’s long strides keeping easy pace with
him. “If you’re right… He’ll want you to show the place. Can you find it again
with certainty?”
“I can, you’ll see why.”
Hugh came out to them yawning, in shirt and hose, but wide awake and shaven
all the same. “Speak low!” he said, finger on lip, and softly
closed the door of his rooms behind him. “The women are still asleep. Now, what
is it? I know better than to turn away anyone who comes with Brother Cadfael’s
warranty.”
Philip told only what was needful. For his own personal need there would be
time later. What mattered now was the glade in the edge of the woods, beyond
the orchards of the Gaye.
“I was following my own scent, last night, and I made too short a cast at
the way I took down to the river. I came on a place in the trees there—I can find
it again—where some heavy thing had lain, and been dragged down to the water.
The grass is flattened where he lay, and combed downhill, where he was dragged,
and for all the three days between, it still shows the traces. I think there
are also spots of blood.”
“The merchant of Bristol?” asked Hugh, after an instant of startled silence.
“I think so. Daylight may show for certain.”
Hugh turned to drain his morning ale in purposeful haste, and demolish the
end of oatcake he had been eating. “You slept at home? In the town?” He was
brushing his black crest hastily as he talked, tying the laces of his shirt and
reaching for his cotte. “And came to me rather than to the sheriff! Well, no
harm, we’re nearer than he, it will save time.” Sword and sword-belt he left
lying, and thrust his feet into his shoes. “Cadfael, you’ll be missing
breakfast, take these cakes with you, and drink something now, while you may.
And you, friend, have you eaten?”
“No escort?” said Cadfael.
“To what end? Your eyes and mine are all we require here, and the fewer
great boots stamping about the sward, the better. Come, before Aline wakes, she
has a bird’s hearing, and I’d rather have her rest. Now, Philip, lead! You’re
on your home turf, take us the quickest way.”
Aline and Emma were at breakfast, resigned to Hugh’s sudden and silent
departures, when Ivo came asking admittance. Punctilious as always, he asked
for Hugh.
“But as that husband of mine has already gone forth somewhere on official
business,” said Aline, amused, “and as it’s certainly you he really wants to
see, shall we let him in? I felt sure he would not go away
without paying his respects to you yet again. He has probably been exercising
his wits to find a way of ensuring it shan’t be the last time, either. He was
hardly at his best last night, and no wonder, after so many shocks, and grazed
and bruised from his fall.”
Emma said nothing, but her colour rose agreeably. She had risen from her bed
with a sense of entering a life entirely new, and more her own to determine than
ever it had been before. By this hour Master Thomas’s barge must be well down
the Severn on its way home. She was relieved of the necessity of avoiding Roger
Dod’s grievous attentions, and eased of the sense of guilt she felt in doing
him what was probably the great wrong of fearing and distrusting his intentions
towards her. Her belongings were neatly packed for travelling, in a pair of
saddle-bags bought at the fair, for whatever was to become of her now, she
would be leaving the abbey today. If no immediate escort offered for the south,
she would go home with Aline, to await whatever arrangements Hugh could make
for her, and in default of any other trustworthy provision, he himself had
promised her his safe-conduct home to Bristol.
The bustle of departure filled the stable-yard and the great court, and half
the rooms in the guest-hall had already been vacated. No doubt Turstan Fowler
and the young groom were also assembling their lord’s purchases and effects,
and saddling up the bay horse, returned to the abbey by an enterprising
errand-boy who had been lavishly rewarded, and their own shaggy ponies. Two of
them! The thud would be on a leading rein.
Emma felt cold when she remembered what had befallen the rider of the third
pony, and the things he had done. So sudden a death filled her with horror. But
the man had done murder, and had not scrupled to ride down his own lord when he
was unmasked. It was unreasonable to blame Ivo for what had happened, even if
his order had not been given in an understandable rage at the misuse of his
patronage and the assault upon his own person. Indeed, Emma had been touched,
the previous evening, when the very vehemence with which Ivo had defended his
action had so clearly betrayed his own doubts and regrets. It had ended in her
offering reassurance and comfort. It was a terrible thing in itself, she thought, to have the power of life and death over your
fellowmen, whatever crimes they might have committed.
If Ivo had lacked something of his normal balance and confidence last night,
he had certainly regained them this morning. His grooming was always
immaculate, and his dress, however simple, sat upon his admirable body with a
borrowed elegance. It had been hateful to him to be spilled into the dust, and
rise limping and defaced before a dozen or more witnesses. This morning he had
made sure of his appearance, and wore even the healing grazes on his left cheek
like ornaments; but as soon as he entered, Emma saw that he was still limping
after his fall.
“I’m sorry to have missed your husband,” he said as he came into the room
where they were sitting, “but they tell me he’s already gone forth. I had a
scheme to put to him for approval. Dare I put it to you, instead?”
“I’m already curious,” said Aline, smiling.
“Emma has a problem, and I have a solution. I’ve been thinking about it ever
since you told me, Emma, two days ago, that you would not be returning to
Bristol with the barge, but must find a safe escort south by road. I have no
right at all to advance any claim, but if Beringar will consent to trust you to
me… You need to get home, I’m sure, as quickly as you can.”
“I must,” said Emma, eyeing him with wondering expectation. “There are so
many things I must see to there.”
Ivo addressed himself very earnestly to Aline. “I have a sister at Stanton
Cobbold who is determined to take the veil, and the convent of her choice has
consented to take her. And by luck it happens that she wished to join a
Benedictine house, and the place is the priory at Minchinbarrow, which is some
few miles beyond Bristol. She is waiting for me to take her there, and to tell
the truth, I’ve been delaying to give her time to change her mind, but the
girl’s set on her own way. I’m satisfied she means it. Now if you’ll confide
Emma to my care, as I swear you may with every confidence, for it will be my
pleasure to serve her, then why should not she and Isabel travel down very
comfortably together? I have men enough to provide a safe guard, and naturally
I should myself be their escort. That’s the plan I wanted to put to your husband, and I hope he would have felt able to fall in with it and
give his approval. It’s great pity he is not here—”
“It sounds admirable,” said Aline, wide-eyed with pleasure, “and I’m sure
Hugh would feel completely happy in trusting Emma to your care. Had we not
better ask Emma herself what she has to say?”
Emma’s flushed face and dazzled smile were speaking for her. “I think it
would be the best possible answer, for me,” she said slowly, “and I’m most
grateful for so kind a thought. But I must really go as soon as possible, and
your sister— you said, you wanted her to have time to be sure… ”
Ivo laughed, a little ruefully. “I’ve already reached the point of giving up
the hope of persuading her to stay in the world. Never fear that you may be
forcing Isabel’s hand, ever since she was accepted she has been trying to force
mine. And if it’s what she wants, who am I to prevent? She has everything
ready, it will give her only pleasure if I come home to say that we can start
tomorrow. If you’re willing to trust yourself to me alone for the few miles to
Stanton Cob-bold, and sleep under our roof tonight, we can be on our way in the
morning. We can provide you horse and saddle, if you care to ride, or a litter
for the pair of you, as you please.”
“Oh, I can ride,” she said, glowing. “It would be a delight.”
“We would try and make it so. If,” said Ivo, turning his grazed smile
almost diffidently upon Aline, “if I may have your approval, and my lord
Beringar’s. I would not presume without that. But since this is a journey I
must make, sooner or later, and Isabel insists the sooner the better, why not
take advantage of it to serve Emma’s need, too?”
“It would certainly solve everything very happily,” agreed Aline. And there
could be no doubt, thought Emma, bolstering her own dear wish with the
persuasion of virtue, that Aline would be relieved and happy if Hugh could be
spared a journey, and she several days deprived of his company. “Emma knows,”
said Aline, “that she may choose as she thinks best, for both you and we, it
seems, are equally at her service. As for approval, why, of course I approve,
and so, I’m sure, would Hugh.”
“I wish he would put in an appearance,” said Ivo, “I should
be the happier with his blessing. But if we are to go, I think we should set
out at once. I know I said all’s ready with Isabel, but for all that we may
need to make the most of this day.”
Emma wavered between her desire and her regret at leaving without making her
due and grateful farewell to Hugh. But it was gain for him, great gain, to be
rid of the responsibility he had assumed, and so securely as this promised.
“Aline, you have been the soul of kindness to me, and I leave you with regret,
but it is better to spare an extra journey, in such times, and then, Hugh has been
kept so busy on my account already, and you’ve seen so little of him these
days… I should like to go with Ivo, if you’ll give me your blessing. Yet I hate
to go without thanking him properly… ”
“Don’t fret about Hugh, he will surely think you wise to take advantage of
so kind and fortunate an offer. I will give him all the pretty messages you’re
thinking of. Once I lose sight of him, now, I never know when he’ll return, and
I’m afraid Ivo is right, you may yet need every moment of the day, or certainly
Isabel may. It’s a great step she’s taking.”
“So I’ve told her,” he said, “but my sister has the boldness of mind to take
great steps. You won’t mind, Emma, riding pillion behind me, the few miles we
have to go today? At home we’ll find you saddle and horse and all.”
“Really,” said Aline, eyeing the pair of them with a small and private
smile, “I begin to be envious!”
He sent the young groom to fetch out her saddle-bags. Their light weight was
added to the bales of Corbière’s purchases on the spare pony, her cloak, which
she certainly would not need on so fine a day, folded and stowed away with the
bags. It was like setting out into a new world, sunlit and inviting, but
frighteningly wide. True, she had solemn duties waiting for her in Bristol, not
least the confession of a failure, but for all that, she felt as if she had
almost shed the past, and could be glad of the riddance, and was stepping into
this unknown world unburdened and unguarded, truly her own mistress.
Aline kissed her affectionately, and wished them both a happy journey. Emma
cast frequent glances towards the gatehouse until the last moment, in case Hugh
should appear, but he did not; she had still to leave her messages to Aline for delivery. Ivo mounted first, since the bay, as he said, was in a
skittish mood and inclined to play tricks, and then turned to give her a
steady, sustaining hand as Turstan Fowler hoisted her easily to the pillion.
“Even with two of us up,” said Ivo over his shoulder, smiling, “this
creature can be mettlesome when he’s fresh out. For safety hold me fast about
the waist, and close your hands on my belt—so, that’s well!” He saluted Aline
very gracefully and courteously. “I’ll see she reaches Bristol safely, I
promise!”
He rode out at the gatehouse in shirt-sleeves, just as he had ridden in, his
men, now two only, at his heels, and the pack-pony trotting contentedly under
his light load. Emma’s arms easily spanned Ivo’s slenderness, and the feel of
his spare, strong body was warm and muscular and vital through the fine linen.
As they threaded the Foregate, now emptying fast, he laid his own left hand
over her clasped ones, pressing them firmly against his flat middle, and though
she knew he was simply assuring himself that her hold was secure, she could not
help feeling that it was also a caress.
She had laughed and shaken her head over Aline’s romantic fantasies,
refusing to believe in any union between landed nobility and trade, except for
mutual profit. Now she was not so sure that wisdom was all with the skeptics.
The hollow where the big, heavy body had lain still showed at least the
approximate bulk of Master Thomas’s person, and round about it the grass was
trodden, as though someone, or perhaps more than one, had circled all round him
as he lay dead. And so they surely had, for here he must have been stripped and
searched, the first of those fruitless searches Brother Cadfael had deduced
from the events following. Out of the hollow, down to the raised bank of the
river, went the track by which he had been dragged, the grass, growing longer
as it emerged from shade, all brushed in one direction. Nor was there any doubt
about the traces of blood, meagre though they were. The sliver of birch bark
under the tree showed a thin crust, dried black. Careful search found one or
two more spots, and a thin smear drawn downhill, where it seemed the dead man
had been turned on his back to be hauled the more easily down to the water.
“It’s deep here,” said Hugh, standing on the green hillock
above the river, “and undercuts the bank, it would take him well out into the
current. I fancy the clothes went after him at once, we may find the rest yet.
One man could have done it. Had they been two, they would have carried him.”
“Would you say,” wondered Cadfael, “that this is a reasonable way he might
take to get back to his barge? He’d know his boat lay somewhat down-river from
the bridge, I suppose he might try a chance cut through from the Foregate, and
overcast by a little way. You see the end of the jetty, where the barge tied
up, is only a small way upstream from us. Would you say he was alone, and
unsuspecting, when he was struck down?”
Hugh surveyed the ground narrowly. It was not the scene of a struggle, there
was the flattened area of the body’s fall, and the trampling of feet all round
its stillness. The brushings of the grass this way and that were ordered, not
the marks of a fight.
“Yes. There was no resistance. Someone crept behind, and pierced him without
word or scruple. He went down and lay. He was on his way back, preferring the
byways, and came out a little downstream of where he aimed. Someone had been
watching and following him.”
“The same night,” said Philip flatly, “someone had been watching and
following me.”
He had their attention at once, both of them eyeing him with sharp interest.
“The same someone?” suggested Cadfael mildly.
“I haven’t told you my own part,” said Philip. “It went out of my head when
I stumbled on this place, and guessed at what it meant. What I set out to do
was to find out just what I did that night, and prove I never did murder. For
I’d come to think that whoever intended this killing had his eye on me from the
start. I came from that riot on the jetty, with my head bleeding and my mood
for murder, I was a gift, if I could but be out of sight and mind when murder
was done.” He told them everything he had discovered, word for word. By the end
of it they were both regarding him with intent and frowning concentration.
“The man Fowler?” said Hugh. “You’re sure of this?”
“Walter Renold is sure, and I think him a good witness. The
man was there to be seen, I pointed him out, and Wat told me what he’d seen of
him that night. Fowler looked in, saw and heard the condition I was in, and
went away again for it might be as much as half an hour, says Wat. Then he came
back, took one measure of ale to drink, and bought a big flask of geneva
spirit.”
“And left with it unopened,” Brother Cadfael recalled, “as soon as you took
yourself off with your misery into the bushes. No need to blush for it now,
we’ve all done as foolishly once or twice in our lives, many of us have
bettered it. And the next that’s known of him,” he said, meeting Hugh’s eyes
across the glade, “is two hours later, when we discover him lying sodden-drunk
under a store of trestles by the Foregate.”
“And Wat of the tavern swears he was sober as a bishop when he quit the
inn.”
“And I would swear by Wat’s judgment,” said Philip stoutly. “If any man
drank that flagon dry in two hours, he says, it would be the death of him, or
go very near. And Fowler was testifying in court next day, and little the worse
for wear.”
“Good God!” said Hugh, shaking his head. “I stooped over him, I pulled back
the cloak from his shoulders. The fellow reeked. His breath would have felled
an ox. Am I losing my wits?”
“Or was it rather the reek you loosed by moving the cloak? I begin to have
curious thoughts,” said Cadfael, “for I fancy that juniper liquor was bought
for his outside, not his inside.”
“A costly freak,” mused Hugh, “the price such liquors are. Cheap enough,
though, if it bought him immunity from all suspicion of a thing that could have
cost him a deal higher. What was the first thing I said?—more fool I! By the
look of him, I said, he must have been here some hours already. And where did
he go from there? Safely into an abbey punishment cell, and lay there
overnight. How could he be guilty of anything but being a drunken sot? Children
and drunken men are the world’s only innocents! If murder was done that night,
who was to look at a man who had put himself out of the reckoning from the time
Master Thomas was last seen alive to the time when his body was brought back to
Shrewsbury?”
Cadfael’s mind had probed even beyond that point, though nothing
beyond was yet clear. “I have a fancy, Hugh, to look again at the place where
we picked up that sodden carcase, if it can be found. Surely an honest drunk
should have had his bottle lying beside him for all to see. But I remember
none. If we missed it, and some stray scavenger found it by night, still
half-full or more, well and good. But if by any chance it was hidden—so that no
questions need ever be asked about how much had been drunk, and what manner of
head could have borne it—would that be the act of a simple sot? He could not
walk through the fairground stinking as he did, whether from outside or in. His
baptism was there, where we found him tucked away. So should his bottle have
been.”
“And if he was neither simple nor a sot that night, Cadfael, how do you read
his comings and goings? He looked in at the tavern, took note of this lad’s
state, listened to his complaints, and went away—where?”
“As far as Master Thomas’s booth, perhaps, to make sure the merchant was
there, busy about his wares, and likely to be busy for a while longer? And so
back to the tavern to keep watch on Philip, so handy a scapegoat, and so
clearly on the way to ending the evening blind and deaf. And afterwards, when
he had followed him far enough into the copse to know he was lost to the world,
back to dog Master Thomas’s footsteps as he made his way back to the barge.
Made his way, that is, as far as this place.”
“It is all conjecture,” said Hugh reasonably.
“It is. But read it so, and it makes sense.”
“Then back with his flask of spirits ready, to slip unseen into a place
withdrawn and private, and become the wretched object we found. How long would
it take, would you say, to kill his man, search and strip him down to the
river?”
“Counting the time spent following him unseen, and returning unnoticed to
the fairground after all was done, more than an hour of those two hours lost
between drunk and sober. No,” said Cadfael sombrely, “I do not think he spent
any of that time drinking.”
“Was it he, also, who boarded the barge? But no, that he could not, he was
at the sheriff’s court. Concerning the merchant of Shotwick, we already know
his slayer.”
“We know one of them,” said Cadfael. “Can any of these matters
be separated from the rest? I think not. This pursuit is all one.”
“You do grasp,” said Hugh, after a long moment of furious thought, “what it
is we are saying? Here are these two men, one proven a murderer, the other
suspect. And yesterday the one of them fetched down the other to his death.
Coldly, expertly… Before we say more,” said Hugh abruptly, casting a final
glance about the glade, “let’s do as you suggested, look again at the place
where we found him lying.”
Chapter Two
Philip, who was learning how to listen and be silent, followed at their
heels all the way back through the orchards and gardens of the Gaye. Neither of
them found fault with his persistence. He had earned his place, and had no
intention of being put off. All the larger boats were already gone from the
jetty. Soon the labourers would begin dismantling the boards and piers until
the following year, and stowing them away in the abbey storehouses. Along the
Foregate stalls were being taken down and stacked for removal, while two of the
abbey carts worked their way along from the horse-fair towards the gatehouse.
“More than halfway along, I remember,” said Hugh, “and well back from the
roadway. There were few lights, most of the stalls here were for the country
people who come in by the day. Somewhere in this stretch.”
There had been trestles stacked that night, and canvas awnings leaning
against them ready for use. This morning there were also piles of trestles and
boards, ready now to be put away for the next fair. They surveyed all the
likely area, but to lay a finger on the exact place was impossible. One of the
collecting carts had reached this stretch, and two lay servants were hoisting
the heaped planks aboard, and stacking the trestles one within another in high
piles. Cadfael watched as the ground was gradually cleared.
“You’ve found some unexpected discards,” he commented, for a corner of the
cart carried a small pile of odd objects, a large shoe, a short cotte,
bedraggled but by no means old or ragged, a child’s wooden doll
with one arm missing, a green capuchon, a drinking-horn.
“There’ll be many more such, brother,” said the carter, grinning, “before
the whole ground’s cleared. Some will be claimed. I fancy some child will want
to know where she lost her doll. And the cotte is good stuff, some young
gentleman took a drop too much, and forgot to collect that when he moved. The
shoe’s as good as new, too, and a giant’s size, somebody may sneak in,
shamefaced, to ask after that. I hope he had not far to go home with only one.
But it wasn’t a rowdy night—not like many a night I’ve seen.” He slid powerful
arms under a stack of trestles, and hoisted them bodily. “You’d hardly credit
where we found that flagon mere.”
His nod indicated the front of the car, to which Cadfael had hitherto
devoted no attention. Slung by a thin leather thong from the shaft hung a
flattened glass bottle large enough to hold a quart. “Stuck on top of the
canvas over one of the country stalls. An old woman who sells cheeses had the
stall, I know her, she comes every year, and seeing she’s not so nimble
nowadays, we put up the stall for her the night before the fair opened. The
bottle all but brained Daniel here, when we took it down, this morning! Fancy
tossing a bottle like that away as if it had no value! He could have got a free
drink at Wat’s if he’d taken it back, whoever he was.”
His armful of trestles thumped into the cart, and he turned to heave a stack
of boards after it.
“It came from Wat’s tavern then, did it?” asked Cadfael, very thoughtfully
gazing.
“It has his mark on the thong. We all know where they belong, these better
vessels. But they’re not often left for us.”
“And where was the stall where this one was left?” asked Hugh over Cadfael’s
shoulder.
“Not ten yards back from where you’re standing.” They could not resist
looking back to measure, and it would do. It would do very well. “The odd thing
is, the old woman swore, when she came to put out her wares, that there was a
stink of spirits about the place. Said she could smell it in her skirts at
night, as if she’d been wading in it. But after the first day she forgot
about it. She’s half-Welsh, and has a touch of the strange about her, I daresay
she imagined it.”
Cadfael would have said, rather, that she had a keen nose, and some
knowledge of the distilling of spirits, and had accurately assessed the cause
of her uneasiness. Somewhere in the grass close to her stall, he was now
certain, a good part of that quart of liquor had been poured out generously
over clothing and ground, no wonder the turf retained it. A taste of it, perhaps,
to scent the breath and steady the mind, might have gone down a throat; but no
more, for the mind had been steady indeed, when stranger stooped over its
fleshly habitation, and sniffed at its flagrant drunkenness. Strangers, all but
one! Cadfael began to see what could hardly be called light, for he was looking
into a profound darkness.
“It so happens,” he said, “that we have some business with Walter Renold.
Will you let us take your bottle back to him? You shall have the credit for it
with him.”
“Take it, brother,” agreed the carter cheerfully, unleashing the bottle from
the shaft. “Tell him Rychart Nyall sent it. Wat knows me.”
“Nothing in it, I suppose, when you found it?” hazarded Cadfael, hefting the
fated thing in one hand.
“Never a drop, brother! Fair-goers may abandon the bottle, but they make
sure of what’s inside before they fall senseless!”
The boards were stowed, the stripped ground lay trampled and naked, the cart
moved on. It would take no more than a handful of days and the next summer showers,
and all the green, fine hair would grow again, and the bald clay coil into
ringlets.
“It’s mine, surely,” said Wat, receiving the bottle into a large hand. “The
only one of its kind I’m short. Who buys this measure of spirits, even at a
fair? Who has the money to afford it? And who chooses it afore decent ale and
wine? Not many! I’ve known men desperate to sink their souls fast, at whatever
cost, but seldom at a fair. They turn genial at fairs, even the sad fellows get
the wind of it, and mellow. I marvelled at that one, even when he asked for it
and paid the price, but he was plainly some lord’s servant, he had his orders.
He had money, and I sell liquor. But yes, if it’s of worth to
you, that same fellow Philip here knows of, that’s the measure he bought.”
A retired corner of Wat’s large taproom was as good a place as any to sit
down and think before action, and try to make sense of what they had gathered.
“Wat has just put words to it,” said Cadfael. “We should have been quicker
to see. He was plainly some lord’s servant, he had his orders, he had money.
One man from a lord’s household suborned to murder by an unknown, one such
setting out on his own account to enrich himself by murder and theft, that I
could believe in. But two? From the same household? No, I think not! They never
strayed from their own manor. They served but one lord.”
“Their own? Corbière?” whispered Philip, the breath knocked out of
him by the enormity of the implications. “But he… The way I heard it, the groom
tried to ride him down. Struck him into the dust when he tried to stop him. How
can you account for that? There’s no sense in it.”
“Wait! Take it from the beginning. Say that on the night Master Thomas died,
Fowler was sent out to deal with him, to get possession of whatever it is
someone so much desires. His lord has spied out the land, told him of a handy
scapegoat who may yet be useful, given him money for the drink that will put
him out of the reckoning when the deed is done. The man would demand immunity,
he must be seen to be out of the reckoning. His lord keeps in close touch,
joins us when we go forth to look for the missing merchant. Recollect, Hugh, it
was Corbière , not we, who discovered his truant man. We had
passed him by, and that would not have done. He must be found, must be seen to
be so drunk as to have been helpless and harmless some hours, and must then be
manifestly under lock and key many hours more. Ten murders could have been
committed that night, and no one would ever have looked at Turstan Fowler.”
“All for nothing,” pointed out Hugh. “Sooner or later he had to tell his
master that murder had been done in vain. Master Thomas did not carry his
treasure on him.”
“I doubt if he found that out until morning, when he had his man let out of
prison. Therefore he brought Fowler to lay evidence that made sure the finger
was pointed at Philip here, and while we were all blamelessly
busy at the sheriff’s hearing, sent his second man to search the barge. And
again, vainly. Am I making sense of it thus far?”
“Sound enough,” said Hugh sombrely. “The worst is yet to come. Which man, do
you suppose, did the work that day?”
“I doubt if they ever involved the young one. Two were enough to do the
business. The groom Ewald, I think. Those two were the hands that did all. But
they were not the mind.”
“That same night, then, they broke into the booth, and made their search
there, and still without success. The next night came the attack that killed
Euan of Shotwick.” Hugh said no word of the violation of Master Thomas’s coffin.
“And, as I remember you argued, once more in vain. So far, possible enough. But
come to yesterday’s thorny business. For God’s sake, how can sense be made of
that affair? I was there watching the man, I saw him change colour, I swear it!
Shock and anger and affronted honour, he showed them all. He would not send for
the groom, for fear a fellow-servant might warn him, he would fetch him
himself. He placed himself between his man and the gate, he risked maiming or
worse, trying to halt his flight… ”
“All that,” agreed Cadfael heavily, “and yet there is sense in it all,
though a more abominable sense even than you or I dreamed of. Ewald was in the
stables, there was no escape for him unless he could break out of our walls. Corbière
came at the sheriff’s bidding, and was told all. His man was detected past
denying, and driven into a corner, he would pour out everything he knew, lay
the load on his lord. Consider the order in which everything happened from that
moment. Fowler had been at the butts, and had his arbalest with him. Corbière
set off to summon Ewald from the stables, Turstan made to follow him, yes, and
some words were exchanged that sent him back. But what words? They were too
distant to be heard. Nor could we guess what was said in the stable-yard. We
waited—you’ll agree?—several minutes before they came. Long enough for Corbière
to tell the groom how things stood, bid him keep his head, promise him escape.
Bring the horse, I will ensure that only I stand between you and the
gate, pick your moment, mount and away. Lie up in hiding—doubtless at his
manor—and you shan’t be the loser. But make it clear that I
have no part in this—attack me, make it good for your part, I will make it good
for mine. And so he did—the finest player of a part that ever I saw. He set
himself between Ewald and the gate, and between them they used the lively horse
to edge us all that way. He made a gallant grab at the rein, and took a heavy
fall, and the groom was clear.”
They were both gazing at him in mute fascination, wide-eyed.
“Except that his lord had one more trick to play,” said Cadfael. “He had
never intended to let him go. Escape was too great a risk, he might yet be
taken, and open his mouth. ‘Fetch him down!’ said Corbière , and Turstan Fowler
did it. Without compunction, like master, like man. A dangerous mouth—dangerous
to both of them—closed at no cost.”
There was a long moment of appalled silence. Even Beringar, whose breadth of
mind could conceive, though with detestation, prodigies of evil and treachery,
was shocked out of words. Philip stared aghast, huge of eye, and came slowly to
his feet. His experience was narrow, local and decent, it was hard to grasp
that men could be monsters.
“You mean it! You believe it! But this man—he visits her, he pays court to
her! And you say there was something he wanted from her uncle, and has missed
getting—not on his body, not in his barge, not in his booth—Where is there
left, but with Emma? And we delay here!”
“Emma is with my wife,” said Hugh reasonably, “in the abbey guest-hall, what
harm can come to her there?”
“What harm?” cried Philip passionately. “When you tell me we are dealing not
with men, but with devils?” And he whirled on the heel of a trodden shoe and
ran, out of the tavern and arrow-straight along the road towards the Foregate,
long legs flashing.
Cadfael and Hugh were left regarding each other mutely across the table, but
for no more than a moment. “By God,” said Hugh then, “we learn of the
innocents! Come on, we’d best make haste after. The lad’s shaken me!”
Philip came to the guest-hall out of breath. With chest heaving from his
running he asked for Aline, and she came out, smiling but alone.
“Why, Philip, what’s the matter?” Then she thought she knew,
and was sorry for a lovesick boy who came too late even to take a dignified
farewell, and receive what comfort a few kind words, costing nothing, could
provide him. “Oh, Philip, I am sorry you’ve missed her, but they could not
linger, it was necessary to leave in good time. She would have wished me to say
her goodbye to you, and wish you… ” The words faded on her lips. “Philip, what
is it? What ails you?”
“Gone?” he said, hard and shrill. “She’s gone? They, you said! Who? Who
is gone with her?”
“Why, she left with Messire Corbière , he has offered to escort her to
Bristol with his sister, who goes to a convent there. It seemed a lucky chance…
Philip! What have I said? What is wrong?” He had let out a great groan
of fury and anguish, and even reached a hand to grip her wrist.
“Where? Where is he taking her? Now, today!”
“To his manor of Stanton Cobbold for tonight—his sister is there… ”
But he was gone, the instant she had named the place, running like a
purposeful demon, and not towards the gatehouse, but across the court to the
stable-yard. There was no time to ask leave of any man, or respect any man’s
property, whatever the consequences. Philip took the best-looking horse he saw
ready to hand, which by luck—Philip’s luck, not the owner’s!—stood saddled and
waiting for departure, on a tether in the yard. Before Aline, bewildered and
frightened, reached the doorway of the hall, Philip was already out of the
gate, and a furious groom was haring across the court in voluble and hopeless
pursuit.
Since the nearest way to the road leading south towards Stretton and Stanton
Cobbold was to turn left at the gate, and left again by the narrow track on the
near side of the bridge, Brother Cadfael and Hugh Beringar, hastening along the
Foregate, saw nothing of the turmoil that attended Philip’s departure. They
came to the gatehouse and the great court without any intimation that things
could have gone amiss. There were still guests departing, the normal bustle of
the day after the fair, but nothing to give them pause. Hugh made straight for
the guest-hall, and Cadfael, following hard on his heels, was
suddenly arrested by a large hand on his shoulder, and a familiar, hearty voice
hailing him in amiable Welsh.
“The very man I was looking for! I come to make my farewells, brother, and
thank you for your companionship. A good fair! I’m off to my boat now, and away
home with a handsome profit.”
Rhodri ap Huw beamed merrily from within the covert of his black beard and
thorn-bush of black hair.
“Far from a good fair to two, at least, who came looking for a profit,” said
Cadfael ruefully.
“Ah, but in cash, or some other currency? Though it all comes down to cash
in the end, cash or power. What else do men labour for?”
“For a cause, perhaps, now and then one. You said yourself, I remember, no
place like one of the great fairs for meeting someone you’d liefer not be seen
meeting. Nowhere so solitary as the middle of a market place!” And he added
mildly: “I daresay Owain Gwynedd himself may have had his intelligencers here.
Though they’d need to have good English,” he said guilelessly, “to gather much
profit from it.”
“They would so. No use employing me. I daresay you’re right, though. Owain
needs to have forward information, as much as any man, if he’s to keep his
princedom safe, and add a few more miles to it here and there. Now I wonder
which of all these traders I’ve rubbed shoulders with will be making his report
in Owain’s ear!”
“And what advice he’ll be giving him,” said Cadfael.
Rhodri stroked his splendid beard, and his dark eyes twinkled. “I think he might
take him word that the message Earl Ranulf expected from the south—who knows,
maybe even from overseas—will never be delivered, and if he wants to get the
best out of the hour, he should be aiming to enlarge his rule away from
Chester’s borders, for the earl will be taking no risks, but looking well to
his own. Owain would do better to make his bid in Maelienydd and Elfael, and
let Ranulf alone.”
“Now I come to think,” mused Cadfael, “it would be excellent cover for
Owain’s intelligencers to ask the help of an interpreter in these parts, and be
seen to need him. Tongues wag more freely before the deaf man.”
“A good thought,” approved Rhodri. “Someone should suggest
it to Owain.” Though there was every indication that the prince of Gwynedd
needed no other man’s wits to fortify his own, but had been lavishly endowed by
God in the first place. Cadfael wondered how many other tongues this simple
merchant knew. French, almost certainly enough for his purposes. Flemish,
possibly a little, he had undoubtedly travelled in Flanders. It would be no
surprise if he knew some Latin, too.
“You’ll be coming to Saint Peter’s Fair next year?”
“I may, brother, I may, who knows! Will you come forth again and speak for
me, if I do?”
“Gladly. I’m a Gwynedd man myself. Take my greetings back with you to the
mountains. And good speed on the way!”
“God keep you!” said Rhodri, still beaming, and clapped him buoyantly on the
shoulder, and set off towards the riverside.
Hugh had no sooner set foot in the hall when Aline flew into his arms, with
a cry of relief and desperation mingled, and began to pour into his ears all
her bewilderment and anxiety.
“Oh, Hugh, I think I must have done something terrible! Either that, or
Philip Corviser has gone mad. He was here asking after Emma, and when I told
him she was gone he rushed away like a madman, and there’s a merchant from
Worcester in the stables accusing him of stealing his horse and making off with
it, and what it all means I daren’t guess, but I’m afraid… ”
Hugh held her tenderly, dismayed and solicitous. “Emma’s gone? But she was
coming home with us. What happened to change it?”
“You know he’s been paying attentions to her… He came this morning asking
for you—he said he has a sister who is entering the nunnery at Minchinbarrow,
and since he must escort her there, and it’s barely five miles from Bristol, he
could as well take Emma home in his sister’s company. He said they’d sleep
overnight at his manor, and set off tomorrow. Emma said yes, and I thought no
wrong, why should I? But the very name has sent Philip off like a man demented…
”
“Corbière?” demanded Hugh, holding her off by the shoulders
to peer anxiously into her face.
“Yes! Yes, Ivo, of course—but what’s so wrong in that? He takes her to his
sister at Stanton Cobbold—I thought it ideal, so did she, and you were not here
to say yes or no. Besides, she is her own mistress… ”
True, the girl had a will of her own, and liked the man who had made the
offer, and was flattered at being singled out for his favours. Even for the
sake of her own independence she would have chosen to go, and Hugh, had he been
present, would not then have known or suspected enough to prevent. He tightened
his arms comfortingly round his trembling wife, his cheek pressed against her
hair. “My love, my heart, you could not have done anything but what you did,
and I should have done the same. But I must go after. No questions now, you
shall know everything later. We’ll bring her back— there’ll be no harm done… ”
“It’s true, then!” whispered Aline, her breath fluttering against his
throat. “There’s reason to fear harm? I’ve let her go into danger?”
“You could not stop her. She chose to go. Think no more of your part, you
played none—how could you know? Where’s Constance? Love, I hate to leave you
like this… ”
He was thinking, of course, like all men, she thought, that any grievous
upset to his wife in this condition was a potential upset to his son. That
roused her. She was not the girl to keep a man dancing anxious attention on
her, even if she had a wife’s claim on him, when he was needed more urgently
elsewhere. She drew herself resolutely out of his arms.
“Of course you must leave me. I’ve taken no harm, and shall take none. Go,
quickly! They have a good three hours start of you, and besides, if you delay,
Philip may run his head into trouble alone. Send quickly for what men you can
muster, and I’ll go see what I can do to placate the merchant whose horse has
been borrowed… ” He was loath, all the same, to let go of her. She took his
head between her hands, kissed him hard, and turned him about just as Cadfael
came in at the hall door.
“She’s gone with Corbière ,” said Hugh, conveying news in the fewest words
possible. “Bound for his one Shropshire manor. The boy’s off after them, and so
must I. I’ll send word to Prestcote to have a guard follow as
fast as may be. You’ll be here to take care of Aline… ”
Aline doubted that, seeing the spark flare up in Brother Cadfael’s bright
and militant eye. Hastily she said: “I need no one to nurse me. Only go—both of
you!”
“I have licence,” said Cadfael, clutching at virtue to cover his ardour.
“Abbot Radulfus gave me the charge of seeing that his guest came to no harm
under his roof, and I’ll stretch that to extend beyond his roof, and make it
good, too. You have a horse to spare, Hugh, besides that raw-boned dapple of
yours. Come on! It’s a year since you and I rode together.”
Chapter Three
The manor of Stanton Cobbold lay a good seventeen miles from Shrewsbury, in
the south of the shire, and cheek by jowl with the large property of the
bishops of Hereford in those parts, which covered some nine or ten manors. The
road lay through the more open and sunlit stretches of the Long Forest, and at
its southernmost fringe plunged in among the hump-backed hills at the western
side of a long, bare ridge that ran for some miles. Here and there a wooded
valley backed into its bare flank, and into one of these Corbière turned, along
a firm cart-track. It was the height of the early afternoon then, the sun at
its highest, but even so the crowding trees cast sudden chill and shadow. The
bay horse had worked off his high spirits, and went placidly under his double
burden. Once in the forest they had halted briefly, and Ivo had produced wine
and oat-cakes as refreshment on the journey, and paid Emma every possible
delicate attention. The day was fair, the countryside strange to her and
beautiful, and she was embarked on an agreeable adventure. She approached
Stanton Cobbold with only the happiest anticipation, flattered by Ivo’s
deference, and eager to meet his sister.
A rivulet ran alongside the track, coming down from the ridge. The path
narrowed, and the trees closed in.
“We are all but home,” said Ivo over his shoulder; and in a few minutes more
the rising ground opened before them into a narrow, level plot enclosed before
with a wooden stockade. Within, the manor house backed solidly into the
hillside, trees at the back, trees shutting it in darkly at either end.
A boy came running to open the gate for them, and they rode into the enclosure.
Barns and byres lined the stockade within. The manor itself showed a long
undercroft of stone, buttressed, and pierced with two doors wide enough for
carts, and a living floor above, also of stone for most of its length, where
the great hall and the kitchens and pantries lay, but at the right, stone gave
place to timber, and stone mullions to wooden window-frames and stout shutters;
and this wooden living apartment was taller than the stone portion, and seemed
to have an additional floor above the solar. A tall stone stair led up to the
hall door.
“Modest enough,” said Ivo, turning his head to smile at her, “but it has
room and a welcome for you.”
He was well served. Grooms came running before the horse had halted, a maid
appeared in the hall doorway, and began to flutter down to meet them.
Ivo kicked his feet free of the stirrups, swung a leg nimbly over the
horse’s bowing head, and leaped down, waving Turstan Fowler aside, to stretch
up his arms to Emma and lift her down herself. Her slight weight gave him no
trouble, he held her aloft for a long moment to prove it, laughing, before he
set her down.
“Come, I’ll take you up to the solar.” He put off the maid with a flick of
his hand, and she stood aside and followed them demurely up the steps, but let
them go on without her when they reached the hall. The thick stone walls struck
inward with a palpable chill. The hall was large and lofty, the high ceiling
smoke-stained, but now, in the summer, the huge fireplace was empty and cold.
The mullioned windows let in air far more genial than that within, and a
comforting light, but they were narrow, and could do little to temper the
oppression of the room. “Not my most amiable home,” said Ivo with a grimace,
“but in these Welsh borders we built for defence, not for comfort. Come up to
the solar. The timber end was built on later, but even there this is a chill,
dark house. Even on summer evenings we need some firing.”
A short staircase at the end of the hall led up to a broad gallery and a
pair of doors. “The chapel,” he said, indicating that on the left. “There are
two small bedchambers above, dark, since they look into the hillside and the
trees at close quarters. And in here, if you’ll forgive me while I attend to your baggage and mine, and see the horses stabled, I’ll rejoin you
shortly.”
The solar into which he led her contained a massive table, a carved bench,
cushioned chairs, tapestries draping the walls, and rugs on the floor, and was
a place of some comfort and elegance, if also somewhat dim and cold, chiefly by
reason of the looming hillside and the shrouding trees, and the narrow windows
that let in so little of the day, and so filtered through heavy branches. Here
there was no fireplace, the only chimney serving the hall and the kitchens; but
the centre of the floor was set with large paving stones to make a hearth proof
against cinders, and on this square a brazier burned, even on this summer day.
Charcoal and wood glowed, discreetly massed, to give a central spark of comfort
without smoke. Summer sunlight failed to warm through the arm’s-length
thickness of the stone walls below, and here the sun, though confronted only
with friendly timber, hardly ever reached.
Emma went forward into the room and stood looking about her curiously. She
heard Ivo close the door between them, but it was only a very small sound in a
large silence.
She had expected his sister to appear immediately on his return, and felt a
pang of disappointment, though she knew it was unreasonable. He had sent no
word ahead, how could the girl have known? She might, with good reason, be out
walking on the open hill in the full summer warmth, or she might have duties
elsewhere. When she did come, it would be to the pleasure of having her brother
home, and with a visitor of her own sex and approximate age, into the bargain,
and to hear that she was to have her will without further delay. Yet her
absence was a disappointment, and his failure to remark on it or apologise for
it was a check to her eagerness.
She began to explore the room, interested in everything. Her own city home
was cushioned and comfortable by comparison, though no less dark and shut in,
if not among trees, among the buildings the trees provided. She was aware that
she had been born to comparative wealth, but wealth concentrated into one
commodious and well-furbished dwelling, whereas this border manor represented
only perhaps a tenth of what Ivo possessed, without regard to the land attached
to all those manors. He had said himself that this was not the most
genial of his homes, yet it held sway over she could not guess how many miles
of land, and how many free tenants and unfree villeins. It was another world.
She had looked at it from a distance, and been dazzled, but never to blindness.
She felt a conviction suddenly that it was not for her, though whether she
was glad or sorry remained a mystery.
All the same, there was knowledge and taste here beyond her experience. The
brazier was a beautiful thing, a credit to the smith who made it; on three
braced legs like saplings, the fire-basket a trellis of vine-leaves. If it had
a fault, it was that it was raised rather too high, she thought, to be
completely stable. The cushions of the chairs were of fine embroidery of hunting
scenes, though dulled by use and friction and the touch of slightly greasy
fingers. On a shelf built under the table there were books, a psalter, a vellum
folder of music, and a faded treatise with strange diagrams. The carving of
chairs and table and bench-ends was like live plants growing. The tapestries
that covered all the walls between windows and door were surely old, rich,
wonderfully worked, and once had had glorious colours that showed still, here
and there, in the protected folds; but they were smoke-blackened almost beyond
recognition, rotted here and there into tinder. She parted a fold, and the
hound, plunging with snarling jaws and stretched paws between her fingers,
disintegrated into powdery dust, and floated on the air in slow dissolution.
She let fall the threads she held, and retreated in dismay. The very dust on
her palms felt like ash.
She waited, but nobody came. Probably the time she waited was not as long as
she supposed, by no means as long as it felt to her, but it seemed an age, a
year of her life.
In the end, she thought she might not be offending by wandering along the
gallery into the chapel. She might at least hear if there was any activity
below. Ivo had bought Flemish tapestries for his new Cheshire manor, he might
well be unbaling them and delighting in their fresh colours. She could forgive
a degree of neglect in such circumstances.
She set her hand to the latch of the door, and trustingly lifted it. The
door did not give. She tried it again, more strongly, but the barrier remained
immovable. No doubt of it, the door was locked.
What she felt first was sheer incredulity, even amusement, as
if some foolish accident had dropped a latch and shut her in by mistake. Then
came the instinctive wish of every creature locked in, to get out; and only
after that the flare of alarm and the startled and furious reappraisal, in
search of understanding. No mistake, no! Ivo’s own hand had turned the key on
her.
She was not the girl to fall into a frenzy and batter on the door. What good
would that do? She stood quite still with the latch in her hand, while her wits
ran after truth as fiercely as the hound in the tapestry after the hart. She
was here in an upstairs room, with no other door, and windows not only narrow
for even her slender body to pass through, but high above ground, by reason of
the slope. There was no way out until someone unlocked the door.
She had come with him guilelessly, in good faith, and he turned into her
gaoler. What did he want of her? She knew she had beauty, but suddenly was
certain he would not go to such trouble on that account. Not her person, then,
and there was only one thing in her possession for which someone had been
willing to go to extremes. Deaths had followed it wherever it passed. One of
those deaths a servant of his had helped to bring about, and he had dealt out
summary justice. A sordid attack for gain, a theft that accidentally ended in
murder, and the stolen property found to prove it! She had accepted that as
everyone had accepted it. To doubt it was to see beyond into a pit too black to
be credited, but she was peering into that darkness now. It was Ivo, and no
other, who had caged her.
If she could not pass through the windows, the letter she carried could,
though that would be to risk others finding it. Its weight was light, it would
not carry far. All the same, she crossed to the windows and peered out through
the slits at the slope of grass and the fringe of trees below; and there,
sprawled at ease against the bole of a beech with his arbalest beside him, was
Turstan Fowler, looking up idly at these very windows. When he caught sight of
her face between the timbers of the frame, he grinned broadly. No help there.
She withdrew from the window, trembling. Quickly she drew up, from its
resting-place between her breasts, the small, tightly-rolled vellum bag she had
carried ever since Master Thomas had hung it about her neck, before they
reached Shrewsbury. It measured almost the length of her hand, but was
thin as two fingers of that same hand, and the thread on which it hung was of
silk, cobweb-fine. It did not need a very large hiding-place. She coiled the
silk thread about it, and rolled it carefully into the great swathe of
blue-black tresses coiled within her coif of silken net, until its shape was
utterly shrouded and lost. When she had adjusted the net to hold it secure, and
every strand of hair lay to all appearances undisturbed, she stood with hands
clasped tightly to steady them, and drew in long breaths until the racing of
her heart was calmed. Then she put the brazier between herself and the door,
and looking up across the room, felt the heart she had just steeled to
composure leap frantically in her breast.
Once again she had failed to hear the key turn in the lock. He kept his
defences well oiled and silent. He was there in the doorway, smiling with easy
confidence, closing the door behind him without taking his eyes from her. She
knew by the motion of his arm and shoulder that he had transferred the key to
the inner side, and again turned it. Even in his own manor, with his household
about him, he took no risks. Even with no more formidable opponent than Emma
Vernold! It was, in its way, a compliment, but one she could have done without.
Since he could not know whether she had or had not tried the door, she chose
to behave as if nothing had happened to disturb her. She acknowledged his
entrance with an expectant smile, and opened her lips to force out some
harmless enquiry, but he was before her.
“Where is it? Give it to me freely, and come to no harm. I would advise it.”
He was in no hurry, and he was still smiling. She saw now that his smile was
a deliberate gloss, as cold, smooth and decorative as a coat of gilt. She gazed
at him wide-eyed, the blank, bewildered stare of one suddenly addressed in an
unknown tongue. “I don’t understand you! What is it I’m to give you?”
“Dear girl, you know only too well. I want the letter your uncle was
carrying to Earl Ranulf of Chester, the same he should have delivered at the
fair, by prior agreement, to Euan of Shotwick, my noble kinsman’s eyes and
ears.” He was willing to go softly with her, since time was now no object, he
even found the prospect amusing, and was prepared to admire her playing of the
game, provided he got his own way in the end. “Never tell me,
sweet, that you have not even heard of any such letter. I doubt if you make as
good a liar as I do.”
“Truly,” she said, shaking her head helplessly, “I understand you not at
all. There is nothing else I could say to you, for I know nothing of a letter.
If my uncle carried one, as you claim, he never confided in me. Do you suppose
a man of business takes his womenfolk into his confidence over important
matters? You’re mistaken in him if you believe that.”
Corbière came forward an idle pace or two into the room, and she saw that no
trace of his limp remained. The brazier had burned into a steady, scarlet glow,
the light from it reflected like the burnish of sunset along the waving gold of
his hair. “So I thought,” he agreed, and laughed at the memory. “It took me a
long time, too long, to arrive at you, my lady. I would not have trusted
a woman, no… But Master Thomas, it seems, had other ideas. And I grant you, he
had an unusual young woman to deal with. For what it’s worth, I admire you. But
I shall not let that stand in my way, believe me. What you hold is too precious
to leave me any scruples, even if I were given to such weaknesses.”
“But I don’t hold it! I can’t give you what I have not in my possession. How
can I convince you?” she demanded, with the first spurt of impatience and
indignation, though she knew in advance that she was wasting all pretences. He
knew.
He shook his head at her, smiling. “It is not in your baggage. We’ve taken
apart even the seams of your saddlebags. Therefore it is here, on your person.
There is no other possibility. It was not on your uncle, it was neither in his
barge nor in his booth. Who was left but you? You, and Euan of Shotwick, if I
had somehow let a messenger slip through my guard. You, I knew, would keep, and
come tamed to my hand—but for a sudden qualm I had, that you might have sent it
back in Thomas’s coffin for safe-keeping, but that was to overrate you, my
dear, clever as you are. And Euan never received it. Who was then left, but
you? Not his crew—all of them far too simple, even if he had not had orders to
keep strict secrecy, as I know he had. I doubt if he told even you what was in
the letter.”
It was true, she had no idea of its contents. She had simply been given it
to wear and guard, as the obvious innocent who would never come
under suspicion of being anyone’s courier, but its importance had been
impressed upon her most powerfully. Lives, her uncle had said, hung upon its
safe delivery, or, failing that, its safe return to the sender. Or, in the last
resort, its total destruction.
“I am tired of telling you,” she said forcefully, “that you are wrong in
supposing that I know anything about it, or believe it ever existed but in your
imagination. You brought me here, my lord, on the pretext of providing me the
companionship of your sister, and conducting us both to Bristol. Do you intend
to do as you promised?”
He threw his head back and laughed aloud, the red glow dancing on his fine
cheekbones. “You would not have come with me if there had not been a woman in
the story. If you behave sensibly now you may yet meet, some day, the only
sister I have. She’s married to one of Ranulf’s knights, and keeps me informed
of what goes on in Ranulf’s court. But devil a nun she’d ever have made, even
if she were not already a wife. But send you safe home to Bristol—yes, that
I’ll do, when you’ve given me what I want from you. And what I will have!” he
added with a snap, and his shapely, smiling lips thinned and tightened into a
sword-blade.
There was a moment, then, when she almost considered obeying him, and giving
up what she had kept so obstinately through so many shocks. Fear was a reality
by this time, but so was anger, all the more fierce because she was so
resolutely suppressing it. He came a step towards her, his smile as narrow as a
cat’s bearing down on a bird, and she moved just as steadily to keep the
brazier between them; that also amused him, but he had ample patience.
“I don’t understand,” she said, frowning as if she had begun to feel genuine
curiosity, “why you should set such store on a letter. If I had it, do you
think I should refuse it to you, when I’m in your power? But why does it matter
to you so much? What can there be in a mere letter?”
“Fool girl, there can be life and death in a letter,” he said condescending
to her simplicity, “wealth, power, even land to be won or lost. Do you know
what that single packet could be worth? To King Stephen, his kingdom entire! To
me, maybe an earldom. And to a number of others, their necks! For I think you
must know, for all your innocence, that Robert of Gloucester
has his plans made to bring the Empress Maud to England, and make a fight of it
for her claim to the throne, and has been touting through his agents here to
get Earl Ranulf s support for her cause when they do land. My noble kinsman has
a hard heart, and has demanded proof of the strength of that cause before he
lifts a hand or stirs a foot to commit himself. Names, numbers, every detail,
if I know my Ranulf, they’ve been forced to set down in writing for him. All
the tale of the king’s enemies, the names of all those who pay him lip service
now but are preparing to betray him. There could be as many as fifty names on
the list, and it will serve, believe me, for Ranulf s ruin no less, since if
his name is not there, he had reached the point of considering adding it. What
will not King Stephen give, to have that delivered into his hand? All committed
to writing, it may be even the date they plan to sail, and the port where they hope
to land. All his enemies cut off before they can forgather, a prison prepared
for Maud before ever she gets foot ashore. That, my child, is what I propose to
offer to the king, and never doubt but I shall get my price for it.”
She stood staring at him with drawn brows and shocked eyes across the
brazier, and felt her blood chill in her veins and all her body grow cold. And
he was not even a partisan! He had killed, or procured others to kill for him,
three times already, not for a cause, but coldly and methodically for his own
gain and advancement. He cared nothing at all for which of them wore the crown,
Stephen or Maud. If he could have got his hands rather on information of value
to Maud, and felt that she was likely to prevail and reward him well, he would
have betrayed Stephen and all his supporters just as blithely.
For the first time she was terrified, the weight of all those imperilled
lives lay upon her heart like a great stone. She had no doubt that this
estimate of what would be in the letter must be very close to the truth, close
enough to destroy a great many men who adhered to the same side her uncle had
served with devotion. He had been a passionate partisan, and it had cost him
his life. Now, unless she could bring about a miracle, the message he had
carried would cost many more lives, bloodshed, bereavement, ruin. And all for
the enrichment and advancement of Ivo Corbière ! She had followed and supported
Master Thomas as a matter of family loyalty. Now that meant
nothing any longer, and all she felt was a desperate desire to avoid more
killing, not to betray any man on either side of the quarrel to his enemies on
the other. To help every fugitive, to hide every hunted man, to keep the wives
unwidowed and the children still fathered, was better by far than to fight and
kill either for Stephen or for Maud.
And she would not let him have them! Whatever the cost, he should not tread
his way unscathed to his earldom over other men’s faces.
“I have nothing against you,” Corbière was saying, confident and at ease.
“Give me the letter, and you shall reach Bristol in safety, and not be the
loser. But don’t think I’ll scruple to pay you in full, either, if you thwart
me.”
She stood fixed and still, her hands cupping her face, as though pressing
hard to contain fear. The tips of her fingers worked unseen under the edge of
her tissue net into the coils of her hair, feeling for the little cylinder of
vellum, but face to face with her he saw no movement at all.
“Come, you are not so attractive to me that you need fear rape,” he said,
disdainfully smiling, “provided you are sensible, but for all that, it would be
no hardship to me to strip you with my own hands, if you are obstinate. It
might even give me pleasure, if the act proves stimulating. Give, or have it
taken from you by force. You should know by now that I let no man stand in my
way, much less a little shopkeeper’s girl of no account.”
Of no account! No, she had never been of any account to him, never for a
moment, only of use in his ruthless pursuit of his own ambitious interests.
Still she stood as if frozen, except that when he advanced upon her at leisure,
his smile now wolfish and hungry, she circled inch by inch to keep the brazier
between them. Its heart was a red glow. She stood close, as if only that core
of warmth gave her some comfort and protection; and suddenly she tore down the
coil of her hair and clawed out the letter, tearing off her silken net with it
in her haste. She dared not simply cast it into the fire, it might roll clear
or be too easily retrieved. She made a desperate lunge, and thrusting it deep
into the heart of the glow, held it there for an agonised moment, snatching
back burned fingers with a faint cry that sounded half of pain and half of
triumph.
He uttered a bellow of rage, and lunged as quickly to snatch it
out again, but the net had flared at a touch, tiny worms of fire climbed to
lick his hand, and all he touched of the precious letter, before he recoiled,
was the wax of the seal, which had melted at once, and clung searingly to his
fingers as he wrung them and whined with pain. She heard herself laughing, and
could not believe she was the source of the sound. She heard him frantically
cursing her, but he was too intent on recovering his prize to turn upon her
then. He tore off his cotte, wrapped a corner of the skirt about his hand, and
leaned to grasp again at the glowing cylinder thrust upright in the
fire-basket. And he would get it, defaced and incomplete, perhaps, but enough
for his purpose. The outer covering was not yet burned through everywhere. He
should not have it, she would not bear it! She stooped as he snatched at it,
clutched with her good hand at the leg of the brazier, and overturned it over
his ankles and feet.
He screamed aloud and leaped back. Glowing coals flew, cascading over the
floor, starting a brown furrow, a flurry of smoke and a stink of burning wood
across the nearest rug, and reached the tinder-dry skirts of the tapestries on
the wall between the two windows. There was a strange sound like a great
indrawn breath, and an instant serpent of flame climbed the wall, and after it
a tree of fire grew, thickened, put out lightning branches on all sides,
enveloped all the space between the windows, and coursed both ways like hounds
at fault, to reach the dusty hangings on the neighbouring walls. A brittle
shell of fire encased the room before Emma could even stir from her horrified
stillness. She saw the huntsmen and huntresses in the tapestries blaze for an
instant into quivering life, the hounds leap, the forest trees shimmer in
fierce light, before they disintegrated into glittering dust. Smoke rose from a
dozen burning fragments over half the floor, and vision dimmed rapidly.
Somewhere in that abrupt hell beyond the hearth, Ivo Corbière , shirt and
hair aflame, a length of blazing tapestry fallen upon him, rolled and shrieked
in agony, the sounds he made tearing her senses. Behind her one wall of the
room was still clean, but the circling flames were licking round both ways
towards it.
There was a rug untouched at her back, she dragged it up and tried to reach
the burning man with it, but smoke thickened quickly, stinging
and blinding her eyes, and flashing tongues of fire jetted out of the smoke and
drove her back. She flung the rug, in case he could still clutch at it and roll
himself in its smothering folds, but she knew then that it was too late for
anyone to help him. The room was already thick with smoke, she clutched her
wide sleeve over mouth and nostrils, and drew back from the awful screaming
that shrilled in her ears. And he had the key of the room on him! No hope of
reaching him now, no hope of recovering the key. The room was ablaze, timber at
window and wall and floor began to cry out in loud cracks and splitting groans,
spurting strange jets of flame.
Emma drew back, shielding her face, and hammered at the door, shrieking for
help against the furious sounds of the fire. She thought she heard cries
somewhere below, but distantly. She knotted her hands in the tapestries on
either side the door, where the flames had not yet reached, tore the rotting
fabric down, rolled it up tightly to resist sparks, and hurled it into the
furnace on the other side of the room. Let the door at least remain passable.
All the hangings that were not yet burning she dragged down. Her seared hand
she had forgotten, she used it as freely as the other. All those other lives,
surely, were safe enough, no one was ever going to read the letter that had
failed to reach Ranulf of Chester. Even that fearful life shut in this room
with her must be all but over, the sounds were almost lost in the voice of the
fire. A busy, preoccupied voice, not unlike the obsessed hum of the fairground.
She had a life to lose, too. She was young, angry, resolute, she would not lose
it tamely. She hammered at the door, and called again. No one came. She heard
no voices, no hasty footsteps on the stairs to the gallery, nothing but the
singing of the fire, mounting steadily from a hum to a roar, like a rioting
crowd, but better harmonised, the triumphant utterance of a single will.
Emma stooped to the keyhole, and called through it as long as breath and
strength lasted. She could neither see nor think by then, all about her was
gathering blackness, and a throttling hand upon her throat. From stooping she
sank to her knees, and from her knees sagged forward along the base of the
door, and lay there with mouth and nose pressed against the gap that let in a
thread of clean air. After a while she was not aware of anything, even of
breathing.
Chapter Four
Philip lost himself briefly in the tangle of small valley tacks that
threaded the hills, after leaving the Long Forest, and was forced to hunt out a
local man from the first assart he came to, to put him on the road for Stanton
Cobbold. The region he knew vaguely, but not the manor. The cottar gave him
precise instructions, and turning to follow his own pointing, saw the first
thin column of smoke going up into a still sky, and rapidly thickening and
darkening as he stared at it.
“That could be the very place, or near it. The woods are dry enough for
trouble. God send they can keep it from the house, if some fool’s set a spark
going… ”
“How far is it?” demanded Philip, wildly staring.
“A mile and over. You’d best… ” But Philip was gone, heels driving into his
stolen horse’s sides, off at a headlong gallop. He kept his eyes upon that
growing, billowing column of smoke more often than upon the road, and took
risks on those little-used and eccentric paths that might have fetched him down
a dozen times if luck had not favoured him. With every minute, the spectacle
grew more alarming, the red of flames belching upward spasmodically against the
black of smoke. Long before he reached the manor, and came bursting out of the
trees towards the stockade, he could hear the bursting of beams, splitting
apart in the heat with louder reports than any axe-blow. It was the house, not
the forest.
The gate stood open, and within, frantic servants ran confusedly, dragging
out from hall and kitchen whatever belongings they could,
salvaging from the stables and byres, dangerously near to the wooden part of
the house, terrified and shrieking horses, and bellowing cattle. Philip stared
aghast at the tower of smoke and flames that engulfed one end of the house. The
long stone building of hall and undercroft would stand, though as a gutted
shell, but the timbered part was already a furnace. Confused men and screaming
maids ran about distractedly and paid him no heed. The disaster had overtaken
them so suddenly that they were half out of their wits.
Philip kicked his feet out of the stirrups which were short for him, but
which he had never paused to lengthen, and vaulted from the horse, leaving it
to wander at will. One of the cowmen blundered across his path, and Philip
seized him by the arm and wrenched him round to face him.
“Where’s your lord? Where’s the girl he brought here today?” The man was
dazed and slow to answer; he shook him furiously. “The girl—what has he done
with her?”
Gaping helplessly, the man pointed into the pillar of smoke. “They’re in the
solar—my lord as well… It’s there the fire began.”
Philip dropped him without a word, and began to run towards the stair to the
hall door. The man howled after him: “Fool, it’s the hob of hell in there,
nothing could live in it! And the door’s locked—he had the key with him… You’ll
go to your death!”
Nothing of this made any impression upon Philip, until mention of the locked
door checked him sharply. If there was no other way in, by a locked door he
would have to enter. He cast about him at all the piles of hangings and
furnishings and utensils they had dragged out into the courtyard, for something
he could use to break through such a barrier. The kitchen had been emptied,
there were meat-choppers and knives, but, better still, there was a pile of
arms from the hall. One of Corbière’s ancestors, it seemed, had favoured the
battle-axe. And these craven creatures of the household had made no attempt to
use so handy a weapon! Their lord could roast before they would risk a burned
hand for him.
Philip went up the stone steps three at a time, and into the black and
stifling cavern of the hall. The heat, after all, was not so intense here, the
stone walls were thick, and the floor, too, was laid with stones over the great
beams of the undercroft. The worst enemy was the smoke that bit
acrid and poisonous into his throat at the first breath. He spared the few
moments it took to tear off his shirt and bind it round his face to cover nose
and mouth, and then began to grope his way at reckless speed along the wall
towards the other end of the hall, whence the heat and the fumes came. He did
not think at all, he did what he had to do. Emma was somewhere in that inferno,
and nothing mattered but to get her out of it.
He found the foot of the staircase to the gallery by stumbling blindly over
the first step, and went up the flight stooped low, because it seemed that the
bulk of the smoke was rolling along the roof. The shape of the solar door he
found by the framework of smoke pouring in a thin, steady stream all round it.
The wood itself was not yet burning. He hammered and strained at the door, and
called, but there was no sound from within but the crackling of the fire. No
way but to go through.
He swung the axe like a berserker Norseman, aiming at the lock. The door was
stout, the wood old and seasoned, but less formidable axes had felled the trees
that made it. His eyes smarted, streaming tears that helped by damping the
cloth that covered his mouth. The blows started the beams of the door, but the
lock held. Philip went on swinging. He had started a deep crack just above the
lock, so deep that he had trouble withdrawing the axe. Time after time he
struck at the same place, aware of splinters flying, and suddenly the lock
burst clear with a harsh, metallic cry, and the edge of the door gave, only to
stick again when he had thrust it open no more than a hand’s breadth. The upper
part, when he groped round it, offered no resistance. He felt along the floor
within, and closed his hand upon a coil of silky hair. She was there, lying
along the doorway, and though the heat that gushed out at him was terrifying,
yet only the smoke, not the flames, had reached her.
The opening of the door had provided a way through for the wind that fed the
flames, such a brightness burned up beyond the black that he knew he had only
minutes before the blaze swept over them both. Frantically he leaned to get a
grasp of her arm and drag her aside, so that he could open the door for the
briefest possible moment, just wide enough to lift her through, and again draw
it to against the demon within.
There was a great explosion of scarlet and flame, that sent
a tongue out through the opening to singe his hair, and then he had her, the
soft, limp weight hoisted on his shoulder, the door dragged to again behind
them, and he was half-falling, half-running down the staircase with her in his
arms, and the devil of fire had done no worse than snap at their heels. He did
not even realise, until he took off his shoes much later, that the very treads
of the stairs had been burning under his feet.
He reached the hall doorway with head lolling and chest labouring for
breath, and had to sit down with his burden on the stone steps, for fear of falling
with her. Greedily he dragged the clean outside air into him, and pulled down
the smoke-fouled shirt from about his face. Vision and hearing were blurred and
distant, he did not even know that Hugh Beringar and his guard had come
galloping into the courtyard, until Brother Cadfael scurried up the steps to
take Emma gently from him.
“Good lad! I have her. Come away down after us—lean on me as we go, so!
Let’s find you a safe corner, and we’ll see what we can do for you both.”
Philip, suddenly shivering, and so feeble he dared not trust his legs to
stand, asked in urgent, aching terror “Is she… ?”
“She’s breathing,” said Brother Cadfael reassuringly. “Come and help me care
for her, and with God’s blessing, she’ll do.”
Emma opened her eyes upon a clean, pale sky and two absorbed and anxious
faces. Brother Cadfael’s she knew at once, for it bore its usual shrewdly
amiable aspect, though how he had come to be there, or where, indeed, she was,
she could not yet divine. The other face was so close to her own that she saw
it out of focus, and it was wild and strange enough, grimed from brow to chin,
the blackness seamed with dried rivulets of sweat, the brown hair along one
temple curled and brown from burning! but it had two fine, clear brown eyes as
honest as the daylight above, and fixed upon her with such devotion that the
face, marred as it was, and never remarkable for beauty, seemed to her the most
pleasing and comforting she had ever seen. The face on which her eyes had last
looked, before it became a frightful lantern of flame, had been the face of
ambition, greed and murder, in a plausible shell of beauty.
This face was the other side of the human coin.
Only when she stirred slightly, and he moved his position to accommodate her
more comfortably, did she realise that she was lying in his arms. Feeling and
awareness came back gradually, even pain took its time. Her head was cradled in
the hollow of his shoulder, her cheek rested against the breast of his cotte. A
craftsman’s working clothes, homespun. Of course, he was a shoemaker. A
shopkeeper’s boy, of no account! There was much to be said for it. The stink of
smoke and burning still hung about them both, in spite of Cadfael’s attentions
with a pannikin of water from the well. The shopkeeper’s boy of no account had
come into the manor after her, and brought her out alive. She had mattered as
much as that to him. A little shopkeeper’s girl…
“Her eyes are open,” said Philip in an eager whisper. “She’s smiling.”
Cadfael stooped to her. “How is it with you now, daughter?”
“I am alive,” she said, almost inaudibly, but with great joy.
“So you are, God be thanked, and Philip here next after God. But lie still,
we’ll find you a cloak to wrap you in, for you’ll be feeling the cold that
comes after danger. There’ll be pain, too, my poor child.” She already knew
about the pain. “You’ve a badly burned hand, and I’ve no salves here, I can do
no more than cover it from the air, until we get back to town. Leave your hand
lie quiet, if you can, the stiller the better. How did it come that you escaped
clean, but for the one hand so badly burned?”
“I put it into the brazier,” said Emma, remembering. She saw with what
startled eyes Philip received this, and realised what she had said; and
suddenly the most important thing of all seemed to her that Philip should not
know everything, that his candid clarity should not be made to explore the use
of lies, deceptions and subterfuges, no matter how right the cause they served.
Some day she might tell someone, but it would not be Philip. “I was afraid of
him,” she said, carefully amending, “and I tipped over the brazier. I never
meant to start such a fire… ”
Somewhere curiously distant from the corner of peace where she lay, Hugh
Beringar and the sergeant and officers who had followed him from Shrewsbury
were mustering the distracted servants in salvage, and damping
down all the outhouses that were still in danger from flying sparks and debris,
so that the beasts could be housed, and a roof, at least, provided for the men
and maids. The fire had burned so fiercely that it was already dying down, but
not for some days would the heat have subsided enough for them to sift through
the embers for Ivo Corbière’s body.
“Lift me,” entreated Emma. “Let me see!”
Philip raised her to sit beside him in the clean, green grass. They were in
a corner of the court, their backs against the stockade. Round the perimeter
the barns and byres steamed in the early evening sun from the buckets of water
which had been thrown over them. Close to the solar end, men were still at work
carrying buckets in a chain from the well. There would be roofs enough left to
shelter horses, cattle and people, until better could be done for them. They
had the equipment of the kitchen, the stores in the undercroft might be damaged,
but would not all be spoiled. In this summer weather they would do well enough,
and someone must make shift to have the manor restored before the winter. All
that terror, in the end, had taken but one life.
“He is dead,” she said, staring at the ruin from which she, though not he,
had emerged alive.
“No other possibility,” said Cadfael simply.
He surmised, but she knew. “And the other one?”
“Turstan Fowler? He’s prisoner. The sergeant has him in charge. It was he, I
believe,” said Cadfael gently, “who killed your uncle.”
She had expected that at the approach of Beringar and the law he would have
helped himself to a horse and taken to his heels, but after all, he had known
of no reason why he should. No one had been accusing him when he left
Shrewsbury. Everyone at the abbey ought to have taken it for granted that Emma
had been duly conducted home to Bristol. Why should they question it? Why had
they questioned it? She had much to learn, as well as much to tell. There would
be time, later. Now there was no time for anything but living, and exulting in
living, and being glad and grateful, and perhaps, gradually and with
unpractised pleasure, loving.
“What will become of him?” she asked.
“He’ll surely tell all he knows, and lay the worst blame where
it belongs, on his lord.” Cadfael doubted, all the same, whether Turstan could
hope to evade the gallows, and doubted whether he should, but he did not say so
to her. She was deeply preoccupied at this moment with life and death, and
willed mercy even to the lowest and worst in the largeness of the mercy shown
to her. And that was good, God forbid he should say any word to deface it.
“Are you cold?” asked Philip tenderly, feeling her shiver in his arm.
“No,” she said at once, and turned her head a little in the hollow of his
shoulder, resting her forehead against his grimy cheek. He felt the soft
curving of her lips in the hollow of his throat as she smiled, and was filled
with so secure a sense of possession that no one would ever be able to take her
away from him.
Hugh Beringar came to them across the trampled grass of the court, even his
neatness smoked and odorous.
“What can be done’s done,” he said, wiping his face. “We had better get her
back to Shrewsbury, there’s no provision here. I’m leaving my sergeant and most
of the men here for the time being, but the place for you,” he said, smiling
somewhat wearily at Emma, “is in a comfortable bed, with your hurt properly
dressed, and no need for you to think or stir until you’re restored. Bristol
will have to wait for you. We’ll take you to Aline at the abbey, you’ll be easy
there.”
“No,” said Philip, with large assurance. “I am taking Emma to my mother in
Shrewsbury.”
“Very well, so you shall,” agreed Hugh, “it’s hardly a step further. But give
Cadfael time at the abbey to hunt out the salves and potions he wants from his
workshop, and let Aline see for herself that we’ve not let Emma come to any
great harm. And don’t forget, friend, you owe Aline something for entertaining
the fellow you robbed of his horse, and guarding your back for you until you
can restore him.”
Beneath his coating of soot Philip could still blush. “True enough, I’m
likely to end in gaol again for theft, but not until I’ve seen Emma safe lodged
in my mother’s care.”
Hugh laughed, and clapped him amiably on the shoulder. “Nor then nor ever,
while I’m in office—not unless you choose to kick the law in the teeth on some
other occasion. We’ll satisfy the merchant, Aline will have sweetened him into complacency, you’ll find. And his horse has been rubbed down
and watered and rested, while you’ve been otherwise occupied, and we’ll take
him back with us unloaded, none the worse for his adventures. There are horses
enough here, I’ll find you the pick of them, a steady ride fit to bear two.” He
had had one eye on Emma while he had been mustering water-carriers and
husbanding household effects, he knew better than to try to wrest her out of
Philip’s arms, or send for a horse-litter to carry her back. There were two
here so joined together that only a fool would attempt to part them even for a
few hours; and Hugh was no fool.
They wrapped her gently in a brychan borrowed from the salvaged bedding,
rather for comfortable padding than for warmth, for the evening was still
serene and mild, though she might yet suffer the cold that comes after effort
is all over. She accepted everything with serenity, like one in a dream, though
the pain of her hand must, they reasoned, be acute. She seemed to feel nothing
but a supreme inner peace that made everything else of no account. They mounted
Philip on a great, broad-backed, steady-paced gelding, and then lifted Emma up
to him in her swathing blanket, and she settled into the cradle of his lap and
arms and braced shoulder as though God had made her to fit there.
“And perhaps so he did,” said Brother Cadfael, riding behind with Hugh
Beringar close beside him.
“So he did what?” wondered Hugh, starting out of very different
considerations, for two officers brought a bound Turstan Fowler behind them.
“Direct all,” said Cadfael. “It is, after all, a way he has.”
Halfway back towards Shrewsbury she fell asleep in his arms, nestled on his
breast. For the fall of her black, smoke-scented hair he could see only the
lower part of her face, but the mouth was soft and moist and smiling, and all
her weight melted and moulded into the cradle of his loving body as into a
marriage-bed. In her dream she had gone somewhere beyond the pain of her burned
hand. It was as if she had thrust her hand into the future, and found it worth
the price. The left hand, the unmarked one, lay clasped warmly round him,
inside his coat, holding him close to her in her dream.
Chapter Five
The summer darkness of fine nights, which is never quite dark, showed a
horse-fair deserted, no trace of the past three days but the trampled patches
and the marks of trestles in the grass. All over for another year. The abbey
stewards had gathered in the profits of rent and toll and tax, delivered their
accounts, and gone to their beds. So had the monks of the abbey, the lay
servants, the novices and the pupils. A sleepy porter opened the gate for them;
and mysteriously, at the sounds of their arrival, though circumspect and
subdued, the great court awoke to life. Aline came running from the guest-hall
with the aggrieved merchant, now remarkably complacent, at her back, Brother
Mark from the dortoir, and Abbot Radulfus’s own clerk from the abbot’s lodging,
with a bidding to Brother Cadfael to attend there as soon as he arrived,
however late the hour.
“I sent him word what was toward,” said Hugh, “as we left. It was right he
should know. He’ll be anxious to hear how it ended.”
While Aline took Emma and Philip, half awake and dazedly docile, to rest and
refresh themselves in the guest-hall, and Brother Mark ran to the herbarium to
collect the paste of mulberry leaves and the unguent of Our Lady’s mantle,
known specifics for burns, and the men-at-arms went on to the castle with their
prisoner, Brother Cadfael duly attended Radulfus in his study. Whether at midday
or midnight, the abbot was equally wide-awake. By the single candle burning he
surveyed Cadfael and asked simply: “Well?”
“It is well, Father. We are returned with Mistress Vernold
safe and little the worse, and the murderer of her uncle is in the sheriff’s
hands. One murderer—the man Turstan Fowler.”
“There is another?” asked Radulfus.
“There was another. He is dead. Not by any man’s hand, Father, none
of us has killed or done violence. He is dead by fire.”
“Tell me,” said the abbot.
Cadfael told him the whole story, so far as he knew it, and briefly. How
much more Emma knew was a matter for conjecture.
“And what,” the abbot wished to know, “can this communication have been, to
cause any man to commit such crimes in pursuit of it?”
“That we do not know, and no man now will know, for it is burned with him.
But where there are two warring factions in a land,” said Cadfael, “men without
scruples can turn controversy to gain, sell men for profit, take revenge on
their rivals, hope to be awarded the lands of those they betray. Whatever evil
was intended, now will never come to fruit.”
“A better ending than I began to fear,” said Radulfus, and drew a thankful
sigh. “Then all danger is now over, and the guests of our house are come to no
harm.” He pondered for a moment. “This young man who did so well for us and for
the girl—you say he is son to the provost?”
“He is, Father. I am going with them now, with your permission, to see them
safely home and dress their burns. They are not too grave, but they should be
cleansed and tended at once.”
“Go with God’s blessing!” said the abbot. “It is convenient, for I have a
message to the provost, which you may deliver for me, if you will. Ask Master
Corviser, with my compliments, if he will be kind enough to attend here tomorrow
morning, about the end of chapter. I have some business to transact with him.”
Mistress Corviser had undoubtedly been fulminating for hours about her
errant son, a good-for-nothing who was no sooner bailed out of prison than he
was off in mischief somewhere else until midnight and past. Probably she had
said at least a dozen times that she washed her hands of him, that he was past praying for, and she no longer cared, let him go to the devil
his own way. But for all that, her husband could not get her to go to bed, and
at every least sound that might be a footstep at the door or in the street,
steady or staggering, she flew to look out, with her mouth full of abuse but
her heart full of hope.
And then, when he did come, it was with a great-eyed girl in his arm, a
thick handful of his curls singed off at one temple, the smell of smoke in his
coat, his shirt in tatters, a monk of Saint Peter’s at his heels, and a look of
roused authority and maturity about him that quite overcame his draggled and
soiled state. And instead of either scolding or embracing him, she took both
him and the girl by the hand and drew them inside together, and went about
seating, feeding, tending them, with only few words, and those practical and
concerned. Tomorrow Philip might be brought to tell the whole story. Tonight it
was Cadfael who told the merest skeleton of it, as he cleansed and dressed
Emma’s hand, and the superficial burns on Philip’s brow and arm. Better not
make too much of what the boy had done. Emma would take care of that, later;
his mother would value it most of all from her.
Emma herself said almost nothing, islanded in her exhaustion and bliss, but
her eyes seldom left Philip, and when they did, it was to take in with deep
content the solid, dark furnishings and warm panelling of this burgess house,
so familiar to her that being accepted here was like coming home. Her rapt,
secret smile was eloquent; mothers are quick to notice such looks. Emma had
already conquered, even before she was led gently away to the bed prepared for
her, and settled there by Mistress Corviser with all the clucking solicitude of
a hen with one chick, with a posset laced with Brother Cadfael’s poppy syrup to
make sure that she slept, and forgot her pain.
“As pretty a thing as ever I saw,” said Mistress Corviser, coming back
softly into the room, and closing the door between. She cast a fond look at her
son, and found him asleep in his chair. “And to think that’s what he was about,
while I was thinking all manner of bad things about him, who should have known
him better!”
“He knows himself a deal better than he did a few days ago,”
said Cadfael, repacking his scrip. “I’ll leave you these pastes and ointments,
you know how to use them. But I’ll come and take a look at her later tomorrow.
Now I’ll take my leave, I confess I’m more than ready for my own bed. I doubt
if I shall hear the bell for Prime tomorrow.”
In the yard Geoffrey Corviser was himself stabling the horse from Stanton
Cobbold with his own. Cadfael gave him the abbot’s message. The provost raised
skeptical eyebrows. “Now what can the lord abbot want with me? The last time I
came cap in hand to chapter, I got a dusty answer.”
“All the same,” advised Cadfael, scrubbing thoughtfully at his blunt brown
nose, “in your shoes I think I’d be curious enough to come and see. Who knows
but the dust may have settled elsewhere by this time!”
It was no wonder if Brother Cadfael, though he did manage to rise for Prime,
took advantage of his carefully chosen place behind a pillar to doze his way through
chapter. He was so sound asleep, indeed, that for once he was in danger of
snoring, and at the first melodious horn-call Brother Mark took fright, and
nudged him awake.
The provost had obeyed the abbot’s invitation to the latter, and arrived
only at the very end of chapter. The steward of the grange court had just
announced that he was in attendance when Cadfael opened his eyes.
“What can the provost be here for?” whispered Mark. “He was asked to come.
Do I know why? Hush!” Geoffrey Corviser came in in his best, and made his
reverence respectfully but coolly. He had no solid cohort at his back this
time, and to tell the truth, though he may have felt some curiosity, he was
attaching very little importance to this encounter. His mind was on other things.
True, the problems of the town remained, and at any other time would have taken
foremost place in his concern, but today he was proof against public cares by
reason of private elation in a son vindicated and praised, a son to be proud
of.
“You sent for me, Father Abbot. I am here.” “I thank you for your courtesy
in attending,” said the abbot mildly. “Some days ago, Master Provost, before
the fair, you came with a request to me which I could not meet.”
The provost said not a word; there was none due, and he felt
no need to speak at a loss.
“The fair is now over,” said the abbot equably. “All the rents, tolls and
taxes have been collected, and all have been delivered into the abbey treasury,
as is due by charter. Do you endorse that?”
“It is the law,” said Corviser, “to the letter.”
“Good! We are agreed. Right has therefore been done, and the privilege of
this house is maintained. That I could not infringe by any prior concession.
Abbots who follow me would have blamed me, and with good reason. Their rights
are sacrosanct. But now they have been met in full. And as abbot of this house,
it is for me to determine what use shall be made of the monies in our hold.
What I could not grant away in imperilment of charter,” said Radulfus with
deliberation, “I can give freely as a gift from this house. Of the fruits of
this year’s fair, I give a tenth to the town of Shrewsbury, for the repair of
the walls and repaving of the streets.”
The provost, enlarged in his family content, flushed into startled and
delighted acknowledgement, a generous man accepting generosity. “My lord, I
take your tenth with pleasure and gratitude, and I will see that it is used
worthily. And I make public here and now that no part of the abbey’s right is
thereby changed. Saint Peter’s Fair is your fair. Whether and when your
neighbour town should also benefit, when it is in dire need, that rests with
your judgment.”
“Our steward will convey you the money,” said Radulfus, and rose to conclude
a satisfactory encounter. “This chapter is concluded,” he said.
Chapter Six
August continued blessedly fine, and all hands turned gladly to making sure
of the harvest. Hugh Beringar and Aline set off with their hopes and purchases
for Maesbury, as did the merchant of Worcester for his home town, a day late, but
well compensated with a fee for the hire of his horse in an emergency, on the
sheriff’s business, and a fine story which he would retail on suitable
occasions for the rest of his life. The provost and council of Shrewsbury
drafted a dignified acknowledgement to the abbey for its gift, warm enough to
give proper expression to their appreciation of the gesture, canny enough not
to compromise any of their own just claims for the future. The sheriff put on
record the closure of a criminal affair, as related to him by the young woman
who had been lured away on false pretences, with the apparent design of
stealing from her a letter left in her possession, but of the contents of which
she was ignorant. There was some suspicion of a conspiracy involved, but as Mistress
Vernold had never seen nor been told the significance of what she held, and as
in any case it was now irrevocably lost by fire, no further action was
necessary or possible. The malefactor was dead, his servant, self-confessed a
murderer at his master’s orders, awaited trial, and would plead that he had
been forced to obey, being villein-born and at his lord’s mercy. The dead man’s
overlord had been informed. Someone else, at the discretion of the earl of
Chester, would take seisin of the manor of Stanton Cobbold.
Everyone drew breath, dusted his hands, and went back to
work.
Brother Cadfael went up into the town on the second day, to tend Emma’s
hand. The provost and his son were at work together, in strong content with
each other and the world. Mistress Corviser returned to her kitchen, and left
leech and patient together.
“I have wanted to talk to you,” said Emma, looking up earnestly into his
face as he renewed the dressing. “There must be one person who hears the truth
from me, and I would rather it should be you.”
“I don’t believe,” said Cadfael equably, “that you told the sheriff a single
thing that was false.”
“No, but I did not tell him all the truth. I said that I had no knowledge of
what was in the letter, or even for whom it was intended, or by whom it was
sent. That was true, I had no such knowledge of my own, though I did know who
brought it to my uncle, and that it was to be handed to the glover for
delivery. But when Ivo demanded the letter of me, and I span out the time
asking what could be so important about a letter, he told me what he believed
to be in it. King Stephen’s kingdom stood at stake, he said, and the gain to
the man who provided him the means to wipe out his enemies would stretch as
wide as an earldom. He said the empress’s friends were pressing the earl of
Chester to join them, and he would not move unless he had word of all the other
powers her cause could muster, and this was the promised despatch, to convince
him his interest lay with them. As many as fifty names there might be, he said,
of those secretly bound to the empress, perhaps even the date when Robert of
Gloucester hopes to bring her to England, even the port where they plan to
land. All these sold in advance to the king’s vengeance, life and limb and
lands, he said, and the earl of Chester with them, who had gone so far as to
permit this approach! All these offered up bound and condemned, and he
would get his own price for them. This is what he told me. This is what I do
not know of my own knowledge, and yet in my heart and soul I do know it, for I
am sure what he said was true.” She moistened her lips, and said carefully: “I
do not know King Stephen well enough to know what he would do, but I remember what he did here, last summer. I saw all those men, as honest in
their allegiance as those who hold with the king, thrown into prison, their
lives forfeit, their families stripped of land and living, some forced into
exile… I saw deaths and revenges and still more bitterness if the tide should
turn again. So I did what I did.”
“I know what you did,” said Brother Cadfael gently. He was bandaging the
healing proof of it.
“But still, you see,” she persisted gravely, “I am not sure if I did right,
and for right reasons. King Stephen at least keeps a kind of peace where his writ
runs. My uncle was absolute for the empress, but if she comes, if all these who
hold with her rise and join her, there will be no peace anywhere. Whichever way
I look I see deaths. But all I could think of, then, was preventing him
from gaining by his treachery and murders. And there was only one way, by
destroying the letter. Since then I have wondered… But I think now that I must
stand by what I did. If there must be fighting, if there must be deaths, let it
happen as God wills, not as ambitious and evil men contrive. Those lives we
cannot save, at least let us not help to destroy. Do you think I was right? I
have wanted someone’s word, I should like it to be yours.”
“Since you ask what I think,” said Cadfael, “I think my child, that if you
carry scars on the fingers of this hand lifelong, you should wear them like
jewels.”
Her lips parted in a startled smile. She shook her head over the persistent
tremor of doubt. “But you must never tell Philip,” she said with sudden
urgency, holding him by the sleeve with her good hand. “As I never shall. Let
him believe me as innocent as he is himself… ” She frowned over the word, which
did not seem to her quite what she had wanted, but she could not find one
fitter for her purpose. If it was not innocence she meant—for of what was she
guilty?—was it simplicity, clarity, purity? None of them would do. Perhaps
Brother Cadfael would understand, none the less. “I felt somehow mired,” she
said. “He should never set foot in intrigue, it is not for him.”
Brother Cadfael gave her his promise, and walked back through the town in a
muse, reflecting on the complexity of women. She was perfectly right. Philip,
for all his two years advantage, his intelligence, and his new and masterful
maturity, would always be the younger, and the simpler, and—
yes, she had the just word, after all!—the more innocent. In Cadfael’s
experience, it made for very good marriage prospects, where the woman was fully
aware of her responsibilities.
On the thirtieth of September, just two months after Saint Peter’s Fair, the
Empress Maud and her half-brother Robert of Gloucester landed near Arundel and
entered into the castle there. But Earl Ranulf of Chester sat cannily in his
own palatine, minded his own business, and stirred neither hand nor foot in her
cause.
ST. PETER’S FAIR
St. Peter’s Fair is a grand, festive event, attracting merchanges from
across England and beyond. There is a pause in the civil war racking the
country in the summer of 1139, and the fair promises to bring some much-needed
gaiety to the town of Shrewsbury.
Until, that is, the body of a wealthy merchant is found murdered in the
river Severn. Was Thomas of Briston the victime of murderous thieves? And, if so,
why were his valuables abandoned nearby?
Brother Cadfael, that shrewd but kindly monk, offers to help the merchant’s
lovely niece Emma. But while he is searching for the killer, Thomas of
Bristol’s wares are ransacked and two more men are murdered. Emma almost
certainly knows more than she is telling—as others will soon realize. Cadfael
desperately races to save the young girl, knowing that in a country at war with
itself, betrayal can come from any direction—and even good intentions can kill.
ABOUT THE AUTHOR
ELLIS PETERS is the nom-de-crime of English novelist Edith Pargeter,
author of scores of books under her own name. She was the recipient of the
Silver Dagger Award, conferred by the Crime Writers Association in Britain, as
well as the coveted Edgar, awarded by the Mystery Writers of America. Miss
Pargeter is well known as a translator of poetry and prose from the Czech and
has been awarded the Gold Medal and Ribbon of the Czechoslovak Society for
Foreign Relations for her services to Czech literature. She passed away in
1995, at the age of 82, at home in her beloved Shropshire.
Ñïàñèáî, ÷òî ñêà÷àëè êíèãó â áåñïëàòíîé ýëåêòðîííîé áèáëèîòåêå BooksCafe.Net
Îñòàâèòü îòçûâ î êíèãå
Âñå êíèãè àâòîðà